M--. ?!;•■■ r»*.;'.y.'. fS!?*^;:- :.;te-^ Qass \- ^ Book . / 7..ao REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER REMINISCENCES AND ANECDOTES OF DANIEL WEBSTER By peter HARVEY BOSTON LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY 1921 <0 i I i Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1877, by LITTLE. BRO>Vlf, AND COMPANT, In the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington. PREFACE. It is now a quarter of a century — almost the life of an entire generation — since Daniel Webster died. During this period new issues have come to the front, the fires of by-gone contests have become harmless ashes, and the reunited Nation can look at such a life as this great man presents, with a calmer and wiser gaze than was possible in the nearer view of days that were fraught with war- ring convictions, now at last hushed to rest. Through a friendship which is one of my happiest and most grateful recollections, it was my privilege to be intimate with this man in life, and to receive his last messages upon the bed of death. ^ And now, as I feel myself drawing near to the end of this earthly existence, I desire to give to the world, and especially to the rising generation, a true insight into the structure of his character, which 1 In a recent letter, addressed to the editor, Mr. C. A. Stetson gives the following interesting incident, showing Mr. Webster's implicit confi- dence in and strong afTection for Mr. Harvey : " During the negotiations - in 1842, Mr. Curtis and myself were sitting in Mr. Webster's study, in Washington, when the mail-bag was brought in. With other letters, one from Mr. Peter Harvey was opened. Mr. Curtis re^d it. Mr. Webster had asked a favor : it was granted. Mr. Curtis said : ' By Jove, he is St. Peter r 'No,' quickly replied Mr. Webster, ' Peter Harvey never denied his friend!' It seemed to me that a more lov'uig compliment nevpr had been paid to one who reverenced Mr. Webster." VI PREFACE. cannot be fully appreciated in simply reading the written records of his public career. His sweetness of temper, his kindness of heart, the depth of his friendships, his firm hold upon the facts of the Christian religion (as illustrated by the Colby and Benton stories related in the following pages), the pathos and humor of his home life, — these ought to be known and understood by the world. The greater part of the matter contained in these pages is derived from my own personal recollections of Mr. Webster, as the result of my long and familiar associa- tion with him. These recollections were dictated by me, from time to time, to a stenographer, from whose written-out notes they have been prepared for this book. Some of the papers and books from which these memora- bilia are taken were deposited with me, several years after Mr. Webster's death, by his son, Fletcher Webster ; and from that time to this they have been a precious legacy, which I now feel the country at large ought to share with me. I do not, in these pages, propose to write a Life of Daniel Webster. I am content to act only as the frail but necessary thread which binds these gathered leaves together. Mr. Webster has written his own biography in the strong and mimistakable impress he has made upon the country's history. I believe that the writings of no man, in the short but eventful history of the American Republic, are so destined for immortal fame as those of him whom it is my last wish to " delight to honor." Let me here state a fact about his memoiy, which, to my mind, is in every way worthy of the attention of the reader. It is this. I cannot but feel that the man who did the most to set forth Mr. Webster's life and genius PREFACE. Vn was Edward Everett. I see this fact in Mr. Everett's whole career ; in the depth of his sincerity and regard ; in his lifelong devotion, and in the uniformly affection- ate manner in which Mr. Webster always spoke of him. I well remember, in the year 1847, when riding with Mr. Webster to the Dedham Agricultural Fair-ground, on a pleasant September day, he said : " I have been thinking over what I propose to say, if called upon to make a speech. Mr. Everett was born in the county of Norfolk ; and, although it is not always wise to say com- plimentary things to a man's face, still I may never have a better opportunity, and I shall tell the Norfolk County people to-day what I think of their distinguished son. When I was appointed Secretary of State the first time, by General Harrison, one of the very first things I did, in the way of foreign appointments, was to select Mr. Everett to represent the Government at the Court of St. James. In such appointments, it has always seemed to me that we should choose men of character, who would represent the country at large, rather than be influenced by the bias of party ; for foreign nations judge of our people by the representative men whom we send out to them. Since that time I have had many letters from eminent statesmen abroad, thanking me for sending Mr. Everett ; for, in choosing him to represent us in the pres- ence of the English people, I sent them a man as well versed in their own history as any man living, with the exception of Macaulay. I am going to tell these people to-day just what I think of Mr. Everett, for I honor him and love him." In the address which he delivered upon this occasion, he carried out his intention formed in the carriage ; and, greatly to the surprise of eveiy one, and to the aston- ishment of Mr. Everett himself, pronounced a noble Viii PREFACE. eulogy upon his friend. Tliougli he was to come in town in the afternoon, and the carriage was at hand, he waited, saying : " Let us stop a moment, and see what Mr. Everett says." Mr. Everett, unconsciously flushed, rose and said : " It would not be becoming in me to bandy compliments with my illustrious friend. He has seen fit to compli- ment me upon my attainments in international law. I should not dare to say here how much personal friend- ship may have had to do with the picture he has drawn ; but this I will say, take from that knowledge of inter- national law what I have learned at his feet, and there would be nothing left worth mentioning." The strong friendship between these two men was never marred by a breath of suspicion or jealousy ; and, if I could have selected one man from the list of his many and distinguished friends to have written his Life, I should have had no hesitation in choosing Mr. Everett. I have often heard Mr. Webster say : " In the turmoil and confusion of party lines, when political friends might be forgetful of every thing save their own prospects, I never had a doubt or misgiving about two distinguished friends who were by my side, however public opinion might vary. One was Edward Everett ; the other was Rufus Choate." There were others, then, who could have written his Life more worthily than I. It is not my purpose, at this eleventh hour, to write it. I only wish to disclose to the public some of the inner traits of his character, to do his great memoiy full justice, and to paint him as he really was, to a new generation who know him not. And I feel that, unless I string together a few of these sacred and long-cherished reminiscences, they will be lost for iever in the hurry of the new generation. How many PREFACE. IX are the relationships this man sustained to the public whom he served, and to the private few to whom he was a delight ! How true was his fidelity to the network of responsibilities that rested upon him ! There comes to my mind, as I write, the remembrance of his address at Saratoga during the Harrison campaign, when, as it may be remembered, the Whigs were much given to glorifying the humble birth of their candi- date for the Presidency. In this address he made the following allusion to the circumstances of his own birth : " It did not happen to me, gentlemen, to be born in a log-cabin ; but my elder brothers and sisters were born in a log-cabin, raised amid the snow-drifts of New Hampshire, at a period so early that, when the smoke first rose from its rude chimney and curled over the frozen hills, there was no similar evidence of a white man's habitation between it and the settlements on the rivers of Canada. Its remains still exist. I make to it an annual visit ; I carry my children to it, to teach them the hardships en- dured by the generations which have gone before them. I love to dwell on the tender recollections, the kindred ties, the early affections, and the touching narratives and incidents which mingle with all I know of this primitive family abode. I weep to think that none of those who inhabited it are now among the living ; and if ever I am ashamed of it, or if ever I fail in affectionate veneration for him who reared it and defended it against savage violence and destruction, cherished all the domestic vir- tues beneath its roof, and, through the fire and blood of a seven years' Revolutionary war, shrunk from no danger, no toil, no sacrifice, to serve his country and to raise his children to a condition better than his own, — may my name and the name of my posterity be blotted for ever from the memory of mankind ! " X PREFACE. It is a great satisfaction to me to present to the read- ers of this volume an Appendix, descriptive of the statue of Webster given by Mr. GORDON W. Buenhaai, of New York, to that city, containing among other notable ad- dresses delivered on that occasion the eloquent and most fitting address of our distinguished townsman, the Hon. Robert C. Winthrop. My thanks are due to Professor Sanborn, of Dart- mouth College, who has furnished me from time to time with papers and anecdotes which he himself had gath- ered through his intimate relationship with the family of Ezekiel Webster. I wish also to express my satisfaction at the able and efficient manner in which Mr. George M. Towle has assisted me in preparmg, duruig the hours of my physical weakness, these gathered fragments of my friend's event- ful history for publication. My prayer is that posterity may value this life, which to me has been so inexpressibly dear ; and that, " since he had the genius to be loved," he may, indeed, " have the justice to be honored in his grave." PETER HARVEY. Parker House, Boston, May 24, 1877. C O ]N^ T E N T S. -K>^ Chapter Paqb I. Early Years 1 II. As A Law Student 30 m. At the Bar 44 IV. At the Bar (continued) 79 V. At the Bar {continued) ....... 114 VI. Public Life 147 Yl\. Mr. Webster and his Contejiporaries . . 205 VIII. Home Life : Marshfield and Franklin . . 263 IX. Personal Traits 316 X. Personal Traits {continued) 355 XI. Religious Thoughts and Feelings .... 393 Xn. Last Days and Death 422 Appendix 449 Index 475 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. CHAPTER I. EAELY YEARS. Daniel Webster was born in the town of Salis- bury, New Hampshire, on the eighteenth day of January, 1782. He was the ninth in a family of ten children, and was the son of Ebenezer Webster by his second wife, Abigail Eastman. Of the house where he was born scarcely a ves- tige now remains. It was a plain, brown, substan- tial New England farm-house, standing a little above the high-road, and upon a hill which over- looked the picturesque and winding valley of the Merrimac. The old cellar, choked with weeds and rubbish, is all that is left, to designate where the house stood. Not far from its site, however, may still be seen the ruins of an old well, dug by his father long before Daniel was born, and from which the family derived their supply of water. Just by the well, in which still hangs, or hung a few years since, an " iron-bound bucket," is an ancient and uuibrngeous elm, affording a grateful shade to those who choose to enjoj' it in summer ; and round about are some old fruit trees which Colonel Eben- i 2 ee:\iiniscences of daniel webster. ezer AVebster planted. It was Daniel Webster's custom to visit the scene of his childhood almost every year for over half a century ; and he loved to sit under the old Avide-spreading elm, beneath which he had played and romped in the days of his infancy, and to drink of the still cool and deli- cious water of the moss-grown well. Near by where the house stood, ran a rapid and bubbling stream, called "Punch Brook." It has now dwindled to a little rivulet, which feebly trickles on its way through field and meadow to the river. On the other side of the highway, a little beyond the site of the old homestead, is the plac^ where stood the mill built by Colonel Webster, though but little re- mains of the building now. The neighborhood is rugged ; granite rocks and ledges appear on every hand : nor does the soil yield very abundantly to the farmer's toil. Two years after Daniel's birth, his father moved to Elms Farm, not far from the old place, of which we shall speak further on. Colonel Ebenezer Webster, the father of Daniel, was one of those stalwart, vigorous, strong-minded, and hardy-bodied yeomen, for whom the Granite State is celebrated. He was a wise man and a patriot, a hard worker, and an energetic and public- spirited citizen. Born in 1739, he was old enough, when the French War broke out, to serve in it ,is a soldier. At the age of eighteen he enlisted in the famous Rodgers' Rangers, comprising some of the boldest and most rugged of the New England yeomanry. The}^ had to go doubly armed, and to carry with them both snow-shoes and skates, to EARLY YEARS. 3 be used when occasion required. Their packs were of double weight. Webster served with Stark, Putnam, and others, who were afterwards Revolu- tionary heroes. These Rangers fought desperate battles, and won brilliant victories on the borders of Lake George. Webster afterwards served un- der General Amherst, at the taking of Ticonderoga and Crown Point. In 1761, he removed to Salis- bury, where he purchased a farm, erected the first mill in the town, married, and settled down to earn such a living as he could by tilling the not very hospitable soil. Soon a sturdy family of chil- dren began to grow up around him, and he found it difficult to supply their needs ; but he speedily became prominent in town affairs, and took a lead- ing part in its business. He was chosen succes- sively surveyor of highway's, moderator, selectman, town clerk, representative, senator, a delegate to the convention " for forming a permanent plan of government," in 1778, and a delegate to the con- stitutional convention in 1788 ; and, in the later years of his life, he sat on the bench as a judge of the Court of Common Pleas for Hillsborough County. Meanwhile, the outbreak of the Revolutionary War opened for Ebenezer Webster a sphere of usefulness to the country, which took him away from farm and town-meeting, and which he en- tered upon with a patriotic zeal and ardor aU his own. When the war broke out, he was captain of the Salisbury militia, composed of sturdy and in- telligent yeomen like liimself. The news of Lex- 4 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. ington and Concord aroused his energetic spirit, and he promptly led his company, consisting of about seventy-five men, to join the rapidly swelling Continental forces at Cambridge. At this time he was in the full vigor of sturdy manhood. "As an officer," says one who wrote of him some years ago, "he was beloved by his soldiers, and always had their entire confidence. He was born to com- mand. He was in stature about six feet ; of a massy frame, a voice of great compass, eyes black and piercing, a countenance open and ingenuous, and a complexion that could not be soiled by powder. He was the very man to head the proud columns of the Sons of Liberty." Arriving at the seat of war soon after the battle of Bunker Hill, his company was added to the little army of minute men who were fast gather- ing from every part of New England. These minute men were not incorporated in the militia, but served as volunteers without pay. They were not soldiers by trade, but real patriots ; and when they had gathered in their harvests, and had a month or two to spare, they would go and give their services to the country. Then they would retura home, dig their potatoes, look after their families, and hurry away again to the camp and the battle-field. Daniel Webster often talked with me of his father's military career. It was while Captain Webster was stationed with his company in the vicinity of Boston, that he had the signal honor of being awarded the duty of guarding the commander-in-chief. Washington EARLY YEARS. 5 had but recently arrived and placed himself at the head of the little and not too well organized Continental army. His camp was on Dorchester Heights, and Captain Webster had just come from New Hampshire with a quota of minute men. This event in his father's life was always a source of great pride to Daniel Webster. One day, in 1840, he was travelling in Virginia with his son Fletcher, who observed that he was in a thought- ful, silent mood. " What is the matter, father ? " asked Fletcher. " Are you not well ? " " Yes, oh yes ; but I was thinking, Fletcher, of an old man, upwards of eighty years of age, whom I met in New Hampshire the other day. He told me some interesting incidents about your grand- father. He said that he was one of the company of minute men that Captain Webster commanded. He spoke of their being on Dorchester Heights at the time General Washington had his camp there. A detachment of my father's company was dele- gated to guard-duty around Washington's tent. The weather was frosty ; and this old man was one day walking to and fro before the tent, when the side opened, and the tall figure of Washington ap- peared before him. He looked up at the sky, and then turning, said to the sentry : ' Soldier, who is the commander of your company ? ' ' Captain Webster, of the New Hampshire minute men/ ' When you are relieved from guard,' returned Washington, ' say to Captain Webster that I should like to see him at my tent early in the morning.' G IlEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. The sentry delivered the message, and my father afterwards told him what Washington had said. He wished to consult him as to the feeling in New Hampshire; asked him about the patriotic senti- ment among his neighbors, — whether they had counted the cost of resistance to the British, and were ready to throw away the scabbard, and spend and be spent in the cause. Washington talked an hour with the captain, offered him refresh- ments, and when he retired, shook him warmly by the hand. Fletcher," added Mr. Webster, "I should rather have it said upon my father's tomb- stone that he had guarded the person of George Washington, and was worthy of such a trust, than to have emblazoned upon it the proudest insignia of heraldry that the world could give ! " Washington need scarcely have asked Ebenezer Webster if his New Hampshire neighbors were in earnest, had he seen the pledge which Webster himself drew up and persuaded eighty-four of his townsmen to sign at the beginning of the war. This pledge ran as follows : — " We do solemnly engage and promise that we will, to the utmost of our power, at the risk of our lives and fortunes, with arms, oppose the hos- tile proceedings of the British fleets and armies against the United American Colonies." In the last year of his life, Daniel Webster thua spoke of the signers of this pledge : " In looking up this record, thus connected with the men of my birthplace, I confess I was gratified to find who were the signers and who were the dissentients EAT?LY YEARS. 7 Among the former was he from whom I am im- mediately descended, with all his brothers, and his whole kith and kin. This is sufficient emblazonry for my arms ; enough of heraldry for me." Ebenezer Webster participated in the war, al- w^ays with gallantry and courage, from beginning to end. He took part in the battles of White Plains and Bennington, and in 1780 was posted at West Point. This was shortly before Benedict Arnold's treason ; and on the evening of the day when the traitor's designs were revealed to Wash- ington, whose headquarters were then at West Point, he summoned Captain Webster to his tent, and ordered him to guard it that night. " I be- lieve I can trust you," he said, with a smile. Thus Ebenezer Webster had the good fortune to protect Washington's life a second time. It was stated by Webster that Washington did not sleep that night, but restlessly paced up and down in his tent, or wrote busily at his camp-table, till daylight. During the war, Captain Webster was appointed one of a committee to ascertain what each towns- man of Salisbury ought to contribute to the ex- penses of the war, and to levy a tax accordingly. The richest man in the town, who had not done any military duty, declared that his share was too large, and refused to pay it. The committee went to him, and Webster, as their spokesman, addressed hnn thus: " Sir, our authorities require us to fight a7id pay. Now, you must pay or fight." The man refused the tax no loneer. As a magistrate, Ebenezer Webster was noted 8 KEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. for his honesty and judgment, his careful con- sideration of the cases that came before him, and the comprehensive and concise method of his decisions. In serving the town, his own estimate of his services was modest enough, and is an ex- ample to the officials of the present day. He charged three or four shillings a day for his time as a town officer. He was not less prominent in church affairs, than in military ability and in the public business of the town ; was often a member of important committees, and was one of the elders of the Salisbury Church for many years. He died in 1806. Ebenezer Webster had ten children by his two wives ; five sons and five daughters. His eldest son, Ebenezer Webster, succeeded to the farm in Salisbury, where he lived quietly until his death. The next child was a daughter, Olivia, who died early. The second daughter, Susannah, married John Colby, of Boscawen, and also died at an early age. The second son, David, was a farmer ; he moved with his family, when quite a young man, to Canada, where he lived and died, leaving many children. Joseph, the third son, was also a farmer, and noted for his ready wit; he died in 1810. The third daughter, Mehitabel, never married, and died at the age of thirty-seven ; and the fourth, Abigail, married a Mr. Haddock, of Franklin, and died early. The three youngest children were Ezekiel, Daniel, and Sarah. The latter married and lived in Franklin, dying in her twenty-first year. EARLY YEA lis. 9 In one of Daniel Webster's diaries, in my pos- session, he thus tonchingly and eloquently alludes to the members of his father's family, and the fact of his surviving them all : — " 1839, Jan. 18, Friday. I am this day fifty- seven years old. My brothers and sisters have all died young-. I was by much the most slender and feeble of the family in early life ; but have yet outlived them all, and no one of them, I think, attained my present age : although I am not quite certain how this may have been with my half- brother, David Webster, who was older than my- self by ten or twelve years, and who died in Canada some years ago, — exactly at what time, I do not know. My father died at sixty-seven. His constitution, naturally strong, was evidently affected by the hardships and exposures of his early life. My uncle, Benjamin Webster, lived to a great age, — I believe above eighty years. He died in Cabot, or the adjoining town, in Vermont. My uncle William Webster went to Salisbury with my father. He died several years ago, being then much the longest resident in the township, and being, I think, something more than seventy years of age. My paternal aunts lived, so far as I re- member, to be seventy or more. My mother also reached seventy. Her mother, Mrs. Gerusha Fitz, whom I well remember, died in my father's house, about June, 1796, aged about ninety years. My own health, from the age of twenty-five, has been remarkably good ; and for little occasional illnesses I have too often been able to see obvious causes ]0 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. in want of proper care and discretion. If I were now to strike out of the number of iny sick days those which have been occasioned by want of proper exercise, by unnecessary exposure, and by some degree of intemperance in eating and drink- ing, I should make a very great deduction from the whole list. For this uncommon health, and for all the happiness of a life which has been, so far, ex- ceedingly happy, I desire to render the most devout thanks to Almighty God. I thank him for exist- ence ; for the pleasure and the glory of rational being ; for an immortal nature ; and for all the gratifications, the joys, and the means of improve- ment, with which he has blessed my earthly life ; for the time and the country in which I have lived ; and for those objects of love and affection, whose being has been entwined with my own." For his own brother, Ezekiel Webster, Daniel had not only the most devoted affection, but the most exalted respect. In his early years, he looked as anxiously for Ezekiel's approval of all his acts, as Coriolanus did for that of his mother. His confidence in his elder brother's judgment was unbounded ; his reliance upon his wisdom and counsel was without limit. When he had brought the whole nation to pay homage at his feet for the splendor of his triumph in the Hayne debate, Daniel Webster had one keen regret. " How I wish," he sorrowfully exclaimed, " that my poor brother had lived till after this speech, for I know that he would have been gratified by it ! " It is not strange that these brothers had so EARLY YEARS. 11 Strong a mutual attachment to each other. The}' were not only own brothers, but were nearly of the same age, and grew up together on the paternal farm. They shared each other's toils and hard- ships, and these were by no means trifling. It has already been said that Ebenezer Webster found it difficult to force a subsistence for his large family from the unyielding soil ; and as soon as his sons were old enough to work, they began to assist him. Ezekiel and Daniel, both endowed with uncommon minds, aspired to something higher than the existence of farmers. They were ambitious to go to college ; and they knew that, ii they did so, they must work their own way. They both labored in the old saw-mill on the banks of the Merrimac ; and after Daniel, who was the more frail and dehcate of the two, left home at the age of fourteen for college, Ezekiel remained at home, aiding in the support of the family, until he was twenty. He thus developed the sturdy and noble frame which was so often remarked afterwards, when he became prominent at the New Hampshire bar. But Daniel, though away, and pursuing his studies at Hanover, did not forget that it was his brother's ambition, as well as his own, to acquire a liberal education. He wrote home urgently en- treating his father to release Ezekiel from his farm duties, and to allow him to attend the Academy. Although Ebenezer Webster was embarrassed in his finances, with all his property heavily mortgaged, he consented. But the brothers, in thus leaving home, did not cease to aid in the support of the 12 KEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. family. They resolved to do all that in them lay to pay their father's debts, and to impart comfort to the old homestead. Bravely they advanced to the battle of life, and cheerfully they met the many difficulties and obstacles that lay in their path. Their success was due to their own industry, perseverance, and pluck, and the steadfast cour- age with which they faced the trials of their early years. It appears from a statement made by Mr. Web- ster in after years, that they shared the meagre contents of a common purse until they had fully established themselves in their profession. When Daniel was teaching in Fryeburg, he on one occa- sion returned home by way of Hanover, where Ezekiel was at colle<>:e. The first thins; he did was to find out whether his brother was in want of money ; and, although his own salary as a teacher was scarcely more than the wages of a daily la- borer, he was quite ready to help Ezekiel if he needed it. The result of his visit may be told in his own words : " We walked and talked during a long evening ; and finally, seated upon an old log, not far from the college, I gave to Ezekiel one hundred dollars, — the result of my labors in teaching and recording deeds, after paying my own debts, — leaving to myself but three dollars to get home with." But neither the assistance of his father nor of his younger brother enabled Eze- kiel to pursue his college course without interrup- tion. He was obliged to eke out his expenses by taking charge of a private school i.u Boston, keep- EARLY YEARS, 13 ing pace with his college class as best he could in the odd hours when he was not teaching. The condition on which he took the school was that the tuition paid during the first terra should go to the retiring master, — a bargain wdiich deprived Ezekiel of ready money for three months. It ia interesting to know that among his pupils at this school were Edward Everett and George Ticknor. He even added more burdens to himself, by under- taking, in addition to his day school, an evening school for sailors. The letters of the two brothers at this trying period of their lives give us a clear insight into their position as well as characters, and are full of interest. Daniel, in a letter to a class- mate in 1801, discloses the poverty and struggles of the family, and his own exertions at once to relieve them and to enable Ezekiel to finish his college course. He says : " Returning home after Commencement, I found, on consideration, that it would be impossible for my father, under exist- ing circumstances, to keep Ezekiel at college. Drained of all his little income by the expenses of my education thus far, and broken down in his exertions by some family occurrences, I saw he could not afford Ezeldel means to live abroad with ease and independence, and I knew too well t-he evils of penury to wish him to stay half beggared at college. I thought it, therefore, my duty to suffer some delay in my profession, for the sake of serving my elder brother, and was making a little interest in some places to the east- ward for employment." The result of " making 14 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. a little interest eastward " was, that he got the school at Fryeburg, and postponed the law to a more favorable epoch. Ezekiel's letters at this time show at once the extremities to which he was now and then reduced, and the unconquerable buoyancy of spirit which he carried through all his difficulties. They are also full of wit and wisdom. The close and loving friendship between Daniel and Ezekiel Webster remained intact as long as the latter lived. As late as 1828, — the year before Ezekiel's death, — Daniel was seeking his counsel and approval as eagerly, now that he had become famous in the Senate and at the bar, as when they were struggling youths with a common purse. Ezekiel was thought, by many persons who had the opportunity of judging his qualities, the equal of his more celebrated brother in intellectual en- dowments. Their father was wont to say that " Ezekiel could not tell half he knew ; but Daniel could tell more than he knew." Ezekiel's great failing was his timidity, while Daniel was as bold and fearless as a lion. Still, the elder brother's talents won him high rank both as a lawyer and as a politician. He rose to be the head of the bar of his native State, served often in both branches ot the Legislature ; and, at the time of his death. in the very prime of his years, is pronounced to have been " by far the most worthy and influen- tial man in New Hampshire." It was on the 10th of April, 1829, that Ezekiel Webster, at the age of EARLY YEAKS. 15 forty-nine, fell suddenly dead in the midst of a brilliant argument, in the court-house at Concord, at the very feet of the judges. His death was caused by heart disease. The intelligence that his revered and beloved brother was no more was carried to Daniel Web- ster by a gentleman named Homans, who related to me what passed. This gentleman was then but a young man, a clerk in a store. At that period railroads were unknown, and it was slow travelling by stage-coach, in the early spring, from New Hampshire to Boston. " I acquainted Mr. Webster," said he, " with the news of the death of his brother. The driver of the coach from Concord brought this news to the Elm Street house. He had fallen dead the day before in the court-house. The driver wished to know where Mr. Webster lived, so as to go and tell him. I said that 1 knew, and would perform the melancholy errand. So I went to Summer Street, and rang the bell, it being nearly two o'clock in the morning. Pretty soon Mr. Webster made his appearance at the window over the bal- cony, and called out, — " ' Who is there ? What is wanted ? ' " I replied : ' I have important news for you, sir, from New Hampshire.' " ' I will be down in a moment,' he said. "He descended, partially dressed, and opened the door. He looked at me earnestly. " ' I have news from your brother,' said I. Is my brother dead ? ' - (( i 16 EEIMLNISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTEK. " ^ He is ; and here is a letter containing the particulars of the event.' " He took the letter with a trembling hand, and bade me walk in. For an instant he seemed per- fectly stunned ; but soon recovered himself, and read the letter. " I asked if he had any wishes as to a relay of horses for the return stage. " ' Yes,' he replied ; ' I am much obliged to you for mentioning it. But before making any ar- rangements, I have a most painful duty to per- form ; and how I can discharge it I scarcely know. Mrs. Webster, my brother's wife, is now under my roof, with her daughter. I must break this to her at once.' " He took the candle, and ascended the stairs ; and I heard a tap on a door, which presently opened. I heard no conversation ; but soon a terrific shriek rang through the house. In a few moments Mr. Webster came downstairs, in tears. He was, however, very deliberate about the ar- rangements for departure, and said he would be ready in two hours. He told me to get a comfort- able carriage, to hold three persons ; which I has- tened to do. They left town at four o'clock. 1 shall never forget the expression of anguish that appeared upon Mr. Webster's face when the sad news was broken to him. He tried to hold his feelings in subjection, but seemed to be utterly overcome by the depth of his grief." Let us now revert to the earlier period of Mr. Webster's life. As has been said, he worked on EAKLY YEARS. 17 his father's farm and at the old mill in his boy- hood ; and he always looked back to those years with fondness and affection. For his father and mother he had a deep-rooted love. He has de- scribed his father to me as a man of great kindness of heait, as well as energy and determination. He was strongly attached to his childhood's home and the memories of the years there spent. One day, after he had been on a visit to Elms Farm, he met me at the Revere House, and took out of his pocket a little parcel. It proved to con- tain a Japan teaspoon. It was all corroded with rust, and half eaten up. " A week ago," said he, " my gardener found that spoon in the garden, near the house where I was born. I may have taken pap with that very spoon ; it is just the kind we used to have. What associations the sight of it brings up ! — what associa- tions of early life ! That and the Bohea tea : that was what stirred the Bohea tea. I would not take a thousand dollars for that spoon ! " He attended school at intervals at the district schools in the neighborhood, and was at different times under Masters Tappan, Chase, and Hoyt ; and at the age of thirteen entered Phillips Acad- emy at Exeter, then recently founded. There he prepared for college, remaining at the academy nine months ; and completed his preparation with the Rev. Samuel Wood, in Boscawen, — the town which adjoined Salisbury. In 1797, at the age of fifteen, he entered Dartmouth College, where he graduated in the summer of 1801. 18 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. Master Tappan, one of his early schoolmasters, who lived to a great age, and saw with intense pride the fame and position attained by his whilom pupil, has left an interesting account of him as he appeared in school. He was the brightest of all the boys, says Master Tappan, and quicker at his studies than Ezekiel. " On a Saturday, I re- member," the ancient pedagogue goes on, " I held up a handsome new jack-knife to the scholars, and said that the boy who would commit to memory the greatest number of verses in the Bible by Monday morning should have it. Many of the boj^s did well ; but when it came Daniel's turn to recite, I found that he had committed so much, that, after hearing him repeat some sixty or seventy verses, I was obliged to give up, — he telling me that there were several chapters yet that he had learned. Daniel got that jack-knife. Ah, sir ! he was remarkable even as a boy ; and I told his father he would do God's work injustice if he did not send both Daniel and Ezekiel to college." The following incident occurred during the boy- hood of Daniel, which is well worth relating, as illustrative of his energy and resolution. While he and his brother were living at home, they on one occasion made a journey to the upper part of Vermont, to visit their uncle Benjamin. On the way, they overtook a teamster with a heavy load, whose horses had stopped and refused to go further, when the team was half way up a steep liill. The horses and wagon were so situated across the road, that it was impossible for the brothers to EARLY YEARS. 19 pass in their chaise. After some time spent by the teamster in trying to start his horses, he left them and went in search of help. Daniel said to Eze- kiel, " Come, we can start this team. You put your shoulder to the hind wheel, and I will mount the near horse." This was no sooner said than done. Ezekiel put his sturdy shoulder to the wheel ; Daniel mounted the horse, whipped, and shouted at him. The horses pulled together, and away they went ; and the load was soon drawn to the top of the hill. When the man returned, he found his horses quietly resting by the roadside, at the summit, and the Websters out of sight. Mr. Webster was once telling me about a plain- spoken neighbor of his father, whose sons were schoolmates of his own. This neighbor had moved into the neighborhood of Hanover, where he had opened a little clearing, and had settled upon a piece of comparatively barren land. After Daniel had been in college several months, his father said to him, — " John Hanson is away up there somewhere. I should like to know how he is getting along. I think you had better find him out, and go and see him." So Daniel inquired about, and soon found out pretty nearly where Hanson lived. " One Saturday afternoon," related Mr. Webster, " I thought I would trudge up there through the woods, and spend Sunday with my old friends. After a long, tedious walk, I began to think T 20 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. should never find the place; but I finally did: and when I got there, I was pretty well tired out with climbing, jumping over logs, and so on. The family were not less delighted than surprised to see me ; but they were as poor as Job's cat. They were reduced to the last extreme of poverty, and their house contained but one apartment, with a rude partition to make two rooms. I saw how matters were ; but it was too late to go back, and they seemed really glad to see me. They confessed to me that they had not even a cow or any pota- toes. The only thing they had to eat was a bundle of green grass and a little hog's lard ; and they actually subsisted on this grass fried in the hog's fat. But," said Mr. Webster, emphatically, " it was not so bad, after all. They fried up a great platter of it, and I made my supper and breakfast off it. About a year and a half afterwards, just before graduating, I thought that, before leaving Hanover, I would go and pay another visit to the Hansons. I found that they had improved somewhat, for they now had a cow and plenty of plain, homely fare. I spent the night, and was about to leave the next morning, when Hanson said to me, — " ^ Well, Daniel, you are about to graduate. You ve got through college, and have got college larnin', — and now, what are you going to do with it ? ' " I told him I had not decided on a profession. " * Well,' said he, ' you are a good boy ; your father was a kind man to me, and was always kind EARLY YEARS. 21 to the poor. I should Hke to do a kind turn for him and his. You 've got through college ; and people that go through college either become ministers, or doctors, or lawyers. As for bein' a minister, T would never think of doin' that : they never get paid any thing. Doctorin' is a miser- able profession ; they live upon other people's ailin's, are up nights, and have no peace. And as for bein' a lawyer, I would never propose that to anybody. Now,' said he, ' Daniel, I '11 tell you what ! You are a boy of parts ; you understand this book-larnin', and you are bright. I knew a man who had college larnin' down in Rye, where I lived when I was a boy. That man was a con- jurer ; he could tell, by consul tin' his books, and study, if a man had lost his cow, where she was. That was a great thing ; and if people lost any thing, they would think nothin' of payin' three or four dollars to a man like that, so as to find their property. There is not a conjurer within a hun- dred miles of this place ; and you are a bright boy, and have got this college larnin'. The best thing you can do, Daniel, is to study that, and be a conjurer ! Mr. Webster used to tell, with great gusto, many stories about his early life. One was as fol- lows: He was once at home from college on a vacation, in the winter time. It happened that a neighbor was going up to Lebanon, which was about four miles from Hanover, the seat of the col- lege. His father had asked this neighbor to carry Daniel back with him when he went. This he 22 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. agreed to do, at least as far as Lebanon ; and Daniel was to walk the remaining four miles. Daniel's mother had packed his little trunk, and he was to start very early in the morning. They set out accordingly, in an old-fashioned, square- boxed pung-sleigh, which contained several barrels of cider, to be sold by the owner at Lebanon. It was a cold, frosty, snappy morning, and by sunrise they had got a mile on their way. Daniel wore his new clothes and mittens, made by his mothers own fond hands : she had spun, woven, and dyed them. In the course of the morning they reached a stream, where the bridge had been carried away by a recent flood, and was lodged just below the road. They saw that the stream could be crossed only by fording, and the neighbor, after looking at Daniel, said, — " You 've got tight boots on ; suppose you take the reins and drive." Daniel did as he was bid, while his companion jumped out to walk across over the broken bridge. " I drove down cautiously," said Mr. Webster, describing the scene, " and aU seemed favorable to a safe passage ; when suddenly the pung sank, and I found myself up to my aniipits in the water. The horse plunged forward, and reached the oppo- site bank, when, almost as quickly as I am telling you, my clothes became a solid cake of ice. It was some distance to any dwelling, and in my condition I was sure of freezing to death very soon unless I was relieved. So I jumped out of the pleigh, and told the man to drive as fast as he EARLY YEARS. 23 could. I took hold of the little iron rod at the back of the pimg, and he plied the whip lustily. I sometimes came near falling, but managed to hold on, and was kept from freezing, by the rapid motion of the sleigh, till we reached a house. I went in and asked the lady, who was at home alone, if she would give me a chance to dry my clothes. She said she would. Then I asked her, ' Can't you put me into a room where there is a bed, and take my clothes and dry them ? ' She said that she could, and it was accordingly so arranged. It was a full hour and a half before I fully recovered and felt comfortable again ; but the fact was then apparent that the contents of my mother s dye-joot were left on my body instead of on my clothes ! '' While in college, Mr. Webster often indulged his literary muse, and not seldom tried his hand at poetry. One of his poems, serious and full of grave thought, appeared in the " Dartmouth Gazette," in December, 1799, and was as fol- lows : — " Happy are they who, far removed from war, And all its train of woes, in tranquil peace And joyful plenty, pass the winter's eve. Such bliss is thine, Columbia! Bless thy God! The toil and labor of the year now o'er, Wliile Sol scarce darts a glimmering, trembling beam, While Boreas' blast blows bleak along the plain ; Around the social fire, content and free. Thy sons shall taste the sweets Pomona gives, Or reap the blessings of domestic ease. Or else, in transport, tread the mountain snow, And leap the cragg}' cliff, robust and stroirg — Till from the lucid chambers of the South The joyous Spring looks out and hails the world! " 24 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER He expressed a similar idea in a noble and beau- tiful passage of a speech delivered in Congress in 1814: — " I am not anxious," he said, " to accelerate the approach of the period when the great mass of American labor shall not find its employment in the field; when the young men of the country shall be obhged to shut their eyes upon external nature, upon the heavens and the earth, and im- mure themselves in close, unwholesome workshops ; when they shall be obliged to shut their ears to the bleatings of their own flocks upon their own hills, and to the voice of the lark that cheers them at the plow, — that they may open them in dust and smoke and steam, to the perpetual whirl of spools and spindles, and the grating of rasps and saws ! " It has already been seen with what generous spirit of self-sacrifice Daniel Webster interrupted his law studies in order to lend aid to the education of Ezekiel. This, as I have said, he resolved to do by teaching school, a frequent resource then as now with poor young men just out of college, who sought a temporary way of making a living. This was in the winter and spring of 1802. The scene of his brief but successful career as a teacher was the town of Fryeburg, Maine, then a part of Massa- chusetts, — a town lying close to the New Hamp- shire border, on the Saco river. The following is the record of his appointment as schoolmaster : — EAKLY YEARS. 25 Fkyeburg, April 20, 1802. At a meeting of the Trustees of Fryeburg Academy, the following report was made by the committee : Your committee, chosen to supply the Academy with a preceptor, to teach in the Academy, beg leave to report that we en- gaged Mr. Daniel Webster, from the first of January last passed, at the price of $350 per year, and in that proportion for a part of the year. David Page, ) ^ 3E, ) NA, i JuDAH Dana In the following September this vote was re- corded : — Sept. 1, 1802. Voted^ That the Secretary return the thanks of this Board to Mr. Daniel Webster, for his faithful services while preceptor of Fryeburg Academy. William Fessenden, Secretary. Many were the stories which Mr. Webster used to tell of his career as a teacher. He added to his duties in this calling that of recording deeds, — an employment he secured from the circumstance of his boarding in the family of the register of deeds of Oxford County. By this means he added not a little to his scant income as preceptor. In a letter to a classmate, written in 1802, Mr. Webster relates the following droll incident : — " On my way to Fryeburg I fell in with an acquaintance, journeying to the same place. He was mounted on the ugliest horse I ever saw or heard of, except Sancho Panza's pacer.^ As I had two horses with me, I proposed to him to ride one 1 This is, no doubt, a slip of the pen. Mr. Webster probably meant Don Quixote's pacer. 26 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. of them, and tie his bag fast to his Bucephalus. He did so, and turned his horse forward, where her appearance, indescribable gait, and frequent stumblings afforded us constant amusement. At length, we approached the Saco river, — a very wide, deep, and rapid stream, — when this satire on the animal creation, as if to revenge herself on us for our sarcasms, plunged into the river, which was then very high, and was wafted down the current like a bag of oats. I could scarcely sit on my horse for laughter (I am apt to laugh at the vexations of my friends). The fellow, who was of my own age and my mate, half choked the current with oaths as big as lobsters ; and old Rosinante was all the while much at her ease. She floated up among the willows, far below on the opposite bank." Not long before his death, Mr. Webster betrayed the minuteness of his recollection of his first visit to Fryeburg, in a conversation with Mr. Robert Bradley. " At that time," he said, " I was a youth, not quite twenty years of age, with a slender frame, weighing less than one hundred and twenty pounds. On deciding to go, my father gave me rather an ordinary horse ; and, after making the journey from SaUsbury on his back, I was to dispose of him to the best of my judgment, for my own benefit. Immediately on my arrival, I called upon you, stating that I would sell the horse for forty dollars, and requesting your aid in the sale. You replied that he was worth more, and gave me an obligation for a larger sum ; and EARLY YEARS 27 hi a few days succeeded in making a sale for me at an advanced price. I well remember that the pur- chaser lived about three miles from the village, and that his name was James Walker." On beino; told that Mr. Walker was still livino;, Mr. Webster added with great heartiness, — " Please to give him my best regards." What with his school-teaching, his law-readmg at chance intervals, and his deed-copying, which he did in the evenings, his hands were quite full at Fryeburg. A portion of two volumes, filled with deeds of his copying, are still extant there The academy in which he taught was a small, one-story building. A few years after his connec- tion with it, this building was taken down, and a new one erected on another site. The ground on which the old academy stood was purchased by Mr. Webster's early friend, Samuel A. Bradley, and con- secrated to the statesman's memory. No plough- share has been allowed to enter the enclosure. While at Fryeburg, Mr. Webster delivered a Fourth of July oration, which received warm praise from his political friends, and was acknowledged by the following vote of the academy trustees : — Voted^ That the thanks of the Board be presented to Preceptor Webster, for his services this day ; and that he would accept five dollars as a small acknowledgment of their sense ot his services tl.is day performed. William Fessenden, Secretary. The five dollars weio no doubt welcome, and far from being disdained ; for at that time every dollar 28 RElVrLNISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. counted with the two ambitious and strug-g-lins brothers. Shortly afterwards he wrote to his brother the following parody of an old song : — " Fol de rol, dol di dol, dol di dol; I'll never make money my idol, For away our dollars will fly all. With my friend and my pitcher, I'm twenty times richer Than if I made money my idol. Fol de rol, dol di dol, dol di dol." The trustees of the academy, as well as the people of Fryeburg, became deeply impressed by Daniel Webster's genius and abilities during his residence there. The Rev. N. Porter, D.D., one of the trustees, predicted that he would be- come the first man in the country. Others de- clared their opinion that, if the people could appreciate the man, he would be governor of New Hampshire within five years ; and one shrewd villager affirmed that to be governor would be small business for him. As a teacher he was greatly beloved. The friendships which he formed at that period of his life were cherished with warm affection till his death. In conversation he often reverted to pleasing recollections, and indulged in refreshing remembrance, of the past. To one of these early friends he wrote, not long before he died, closing his letter in these terms : " I am happy to hear of your establishment and the growth of your fame. You have a little world around you ; fill it with good deeds, and you will fill it with your own glory." EARLY YEARS. 29 To another of these early companions he sent an engraving of himself as " a token of early and long-continued friendship." After Fryeburg Acad- emy was burned, the trustees proceeded to raise funds to erect a new building. Mr. Webster en- gaged in the enterprise with energy and cordial good will, and promised to forward the work with all his power. As late as September, 1851, he ex- pressed a purpose of being present at the dedi- cation of the building and delivering the opening address ; but was prevented from fulfilling his friendly intent. CHAPTER 11. AS A LAW STUDENT. Mr. Webster began to study law in August, 1801, immediately after his graduation, in the office of Thomas W. Thompson, a friend of his father, at Salisbury. His studies were inter- rupted, though not discontinued, by his teaching at Fryeburg ; and, after the close of his service as a teacher, he returned to Mr. Thompson's office, where he remained about two years. In July, 1804, he went to Boston to pursue his studies in the office of the celebrated Christopher Gore, who had already occupied high posts of honor at home and abroad, and who was afterwards Governor of Massachusetts. He remained in Boston until the spring of 1805 ; and, during this period, he at one time took charge of his brother Ezekiel's school, and thus became the preceptor of the boy Edward Everett. Mr. Webster was admitted to the bar in Boston, in March, 1805, and soon after established himself and put out his sign at Boscawen, the town next to Sahsbury, that he might be near at hand to assist his father. In the autumn of 1807, — his father hav- ing now died, — he removed to Portsmouth, where AS A LAW STUDENT. 31 he resided until 1816, when he took up his perma- nent residence in Boston. He evidently exercised sound judgment in choosing the law as a profession, as his after ca- reer abundantly proved. Sometimes, however, his fine literary taste was shocked by the rude bald ness and dry technicalities of legal studies, and his well-trained moral sense was still more shocked by what Jeremiah Smith used to call " the practices " of the attorneys of the day. He once complained of the course of study laid down in his time for young students at law. The books first put into their hands, he said, were dry, technical, repulsive, and to a great extent unin- telligible to the beginner. This, together with the style of practice then in vogue in country offices, tended to create in his mind a disrelish for his chosen profession. More liberal study and better society, however, gave him more enlarged views of jurisprudence. The following letter from the Hon. Judah Dana, of Fryeburg, shows how a portion of his leisure hours were employed, when a teacher ; and how, like other young men oppressed by the res angusttx domi, he strove " to gain time " in his professional studies : — Rochester, Jan. 18, 1805. Dear Sir, — Your favor of December 29 arrived in rny absence, and the necessity of my attending court in this town immediately after the receipt of it, prevented me from answering it till this time ; and now I am in the bustle of the business of the court. T cannot ascertain the precise time of o 2 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. your residence at Fryeburg as preceptor of the academy, but think you came in November or December of 1801, and returned the September following, making a term of eight months. On your arrival, you informed rae that, as you had commenced, you intended to pursue, the study of the law, and wished the use of my library during said term. You had access to the same ; and I presume that you de- voted the principal part of your leisure hours, while you were at P'ryeburg, to the study of the law. If a certificate of tho above import will be of any benefit to you, I can truly and cheerfully make it. I am, dear sir, in much confusion, and with much esteem, Your sincere friend, JuDAH Dana. Mr. Webster, from the time he began to study law, had a strong desire to pursue his studies in the office of Christopher Gore, at Boston. This had been a sort of youthful dream with him. Gore was a great lawyer and a great man. In 1804, Mr. Webster went to Boston to visit a classmate named Bradley, who was better off than himself in this world's goods, and was then studying with Judge Heard. They had been chums in college ; and when Mr. Webster went to Fryeburg, Bradley began his studies in Boston. Mr. Webster found his friend, saw the Boston sights, and spoke of his desire to spend his last year of study in Mr. Gore's office. "I have seen Mr. Gore," said Bradley, "and will take you into his office and introduce you to him." This was rather a bold venture, as Bradley knew the famous lawyer scarcely more than did Webster himself. AS A LAW STUDENT. 33 Mr. Webster, in relating the incident to me, said : — " I agreed to go with Bradley, and we started off ; but, as we were going up the stairs, it oc- curred to me that such an introduction would be rather a drawback. I consoled myself, however, by thinking that Mr. Gore might not be in, and that that would end it all. We knocked and en- tered. He was in, and was sitting at his desk, with his black-bowed spectacles on his nose, look- ing rather formidable. " ' Good-morning, Mr. Gore,' said Bradley. ' My classmate, Mr. Webster, who has been studying with Senator Thompson, is very anxious to enter his name in your office, to finish his studies.' " I stood there, anxious enough ; and, from Mr. Gore's forbidding look, feared that he was making up his mind to give me a point-blank refusal. I did not show any forwardness, but was rather diffi- dent, and finally said : ' My friend and classmate has been kind enough to introduce me to you ; but I did not think of obtruding myself here with- out letters from sources of credit. And, although I have a strong wish to enter your office, I had no thought of intruding at this time.' " I saw his features relax a little, as he said : ' My office is hardly the best place for you ; my practice is very limited, consisting only of chamber practice : you would get more knowledge by study- ing with gentlemen having a larger commercial business. I have a library, and that is all.' I know that very well,' 1 replied ; 'bat I a i 34 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. should feel proud to have studied my profession in your office.' '•Bradley added: 'I think, sir, you will never have cause to regret taking my friend. I feel sure that his future will amply justify the venture ; and if you will allow me, I will give you a copy of a eulogy delivered by him on a classmate, when he was fifteen years old, which was published by his class.' " I felt mortified at this, but said nothing. Mr. Gore looked at the closing part of the eulogy, and then at me. He asked me some questions about my father and mother and Senator Thompson, all of which I modestly answered ; and the result was that Mr. Gore spoke kind words, and asked me to sit down. My friend had already disappeared ! Mr. Gore said what I had suggested was very reasonable, and required little apology; he did not mean to fill his office with clerks, but was willing to receive one or two, and would consider what I had said. He talked to me pleasantly for a quarter of an hour ; and, when I arose to depart, he said : ' My young friend, you look as though you might be trusted. You say you came to study, and not to waste time. I will take you at your word. You may as well hang up your hat at once. Go into the other room ; take your book, and sit down to reading it, and write at your convenience to New Hampshire for your letters.' " From that time till the close of Governor Gore's life I never had a warmer friend than he. Pie intro- duced me to the bar, and followed me with good AS A LAW STUDENT. 35 wishes and kindness down to the period of his death." At the time of his beginning practice, Mr. Web- ster's father was a county judge. The New Hamp- shire courts were then composed of a bench of regular judges and of the sitting magistrates, or side judges, one for each county. Ebenezer Web- ster was one of these side judges. He was no law- yer, but sat somewhat in the capacity of a juror, personally knowing the circumstances of many of the cases, and acting as an adviser. The cele- brated Jeremiah Smith was one of the judges, and Judo:e Farrar the other. Both were friends of the elder Webster. They knew that he had fought for his country, was everywhere respected, and that he had made great sacrifices to give his sons a liberal education. It happened that, just as Daniel was completing his studies in Mr. Gore's office, the clerkship of the county court of Merrimac became vacant by the death of the incumbent. The clerk was paid by fees ; and, as there was a great deal of Htigation in New Hampshire, it did not require a large tariff of fees to give the clerk a generous income. It is a fact, that the most lucrative offices in New Hampshire at that time were the clerks of courts. They received moni pay than the judges or the governor or any sala- ried officer. A clerkship was worth from $1,500 to $2,000 a year, which would be equivalent to nearly $10,000 now. When this office became vacant, lawyers of es- 36 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. tablished reputation asked for it. No member oi the bar could earn so much, or really received so much, as the clerks in the larger counties, where there was a good deal of litigation. There was a lively competition for the Merrimac office, and Ebenezer Webster promptly applied to Judge Smith and Judge Farrar for this place for Daniel. They thought the matter over; and, although strong political influences were brought to bear for other men, they finally announced to the father that they had decided to give the appointment to Daniel. It was not possible for them to have done him a greater favor. It was a great act of friendship on the part of the judges. They did it as a sincere mark of friendship for the elder Webster. " I felt," said Daniel, " that in the fortunes of our family the turning-point had arrived. Before, it had been hard for them to get money ; here was an office that would bring $2000 a year, of which $1500 could be laid by, — a fortune, every thing that one could wish for." Mr. Webster had just written home to say that he had completed his studies and was about to be admitted to the bar, when he received a letter from his father, announcing that he had procured for him the clerkship of Merrimac County, and urging him to make no delay in accepting the office with proper acknowledgments, either in person or by letter. He received the letter at night, and saw at once that it was a singular piece of good fortune to get this office. He began to feel rich ; AS A LAW STUDENT. 37 now he should not want for money, and all his family could share in his prosperity. With a feeling of thankfulness and gratitude, he at the same time was greatly excited, and could scarcely sleep. He was eager to tell his good for- tune to Mr. Gore. He went early to the office, and it seemed as if the hours never would pass for the time when Mr. Gore should arrive. As soon as he came in, and had taken off his hat, Daniel followed him into his private office, and his face was lighted up with joy as he approached his patron. " You are in good plight this morning," said Mr. Gore ; " you have had good news ? " " Yes, ^ nave ; and I have come to receive your ^congratulations, for I know they will be hearty, — you have been so kind to me." " I then," Mr. Webster went on to tell me, " handed to him my father's letter ; and I soon noticed that, instead of expressing delight, he seemed a little moody. He did not say he was glad of it ; he did not say he was pleased ; he did not congratulate me. I stood a while, and then sat down. Finally, he said : — " ' You are a little excited about this office now j go into the other room, and by-and-by I will have a little talk with you about it.' " I could not understand what he meant, but went to my desk. After the lapse of an hour he called me into his office again, and said : — " ' I know perfectly well how you feel about this office. In your situation, having had a pretty hard struggle to get an education, and appreciating oS REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. keenly the sacrifices a fond parent has made to aid you, it is not strange that you are eager to repay his kindness. But I want to say to you that you have got up the hill ; your education is secure, and you are now just ready to start in your profession. Although this office of clerk of the court is in the line of the law, still it is not a place where there is much chance for the display of talent. A man merely rusts out in it, as he would in driving a stage. There is nothing in it. To come to the point, I do not want you to take that office.' " If he had put a pistol to my head," said Mr. Webster, " and had demanded my life, I should not have been more astonished. " ' Do you know the income of the office ? ' I asked. " * Yes, I know all about it. So far as mere money considerations are concerned, it would be worth while to take it ; but I have a notion that your mission is to make opinions for other men to record, and not to be the clerk to record the opin- ions of courts. You are destined for higher dis- tinctions than to be clerk of a court, if I am not mistaken.' " ' But money is my chief ambition, and this will bring it to me.' " ' I know it ; but I feel so strongly on this point, that I am going to persuade you to decline that place, and to trust to Providence for something better. I know your history and your father's wishes and feelings ; and 1 give this advice, know- ing all these things. I don't want you to take the AS A LAW STUDENT. 39 office. You will have a struggle with your father over it, and it will be hard for him to comprehend your refusal. But before you leave me I am go- ing to extort a promise from you to decline it.' " It is needless to repeat the arguments that he used. Suffice it to say that, against my own judg- ment, I promised that I would not take the clerk- ship. He said kind, complimentary, and even flattering things of me, and still I felt that I was throwing away a great present good. I had strong confidence in Mr. Gore's judgment, and I do not suppose anybody else could have persuaded me to make such a promise. He said that if I re- fused the office, and in five or six years I did not admit that his advice was good, he would make up to me the difference. I promised. It was a leap in the dark. It was faith. " The next day I started — it being a cold wm- ter's day — to visit my father and break to him my decision. That was the hardest of all ; but my mind was made up, and Mr. Gore had inspired me with a good deal of confidence in myself. He made me feel that there was something in me, and I started for New Hampshire with that feeling. I reached Concord in the afternoon of the third day, and there hired a man to carry me fourteen miles in a pung to my father's, where I arrived in the early evening. " As I approached the door, jumped out of the sleigh, and mounted the stoop or portico, I looked through the window. I saw a blazing wood fire, and a nice, clean, painted hearth ; and there was ray 40 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. father, — a venerable man, — seated in his chair, with his white locks streaming down, looking into the fire. I stood and watched him, with fihal reverence. I thought to myself, how happy he is now, contemplating all the good that is to come ; and I am going in to mar and dash it all away ! I went in : he never greeted me more warmly. * How glad I am to see you ! ' he exclaimed, as he kissed me. "My mother came in, and it was a jubilee for five minutes. At last supper was brought in, and I was making up my mind how to break this thing to my father. I almost regretted the rash prom- ise I had made to Mr. Gore. I wished a hundred times that I could retract it. Then ao-ain. there was something that prompted me to think that 1 could do better than to record other men's opinions. " My father broached the subject, by saying, ' I think you had better ride over to Judge Smith's in the morning, and be qualified at once.' " ' I shall write to Judge Smith and Judge Far- rar to-morrow,' I replied ; ' thank them for their favor as warmly as I know how, and for their kindness and friendship for you which has procured me this appointment. And, while I render these thanks, I am going to decline the office.' " My father stood and looked at me in amaze- ment. " '■ Decline ! Are you crazy ? You are joking, — you are trifling ! ' No, sir 3 I am serious. Mr. Gore ' — a i AS A LAW STUDENT. 41 "^None of your Mr. Gores to me ! Don't you talk about Mr. Gore ! ' "And," said Mr. Webster, "I can see now that look of mingled anger, incredulity, and pity that he wore, as he said : — " ' Mr. Gore ! — telling a young fool to refuse a good office ! — a silly boy that knows nothing about life . — filling his head with some foolish fancies about what he is going to do, when this opportu- nity offers to give him all a reasonable man re- quires ! None of your Mr. Gores to me ! — a man who is driving his coach with four horses, with his liveried servants, who knows nothing about the struggles of life ! — filling a young fool's head with nonsense ! You are crazy ! You vex me ! You never annoyed me so much in your life before ! ' " He began to scold, for the first time in his life, and I thought it w\as time for me to speak. " ' My father, I wish to say to you that no man living, no son, appreciates more than I do the trials you have gone through for me ; and no one could be more grateful than I. I appreciate all you have done for my welfare, and the sacrifices you and my mother have made. But still, I am now of age, and am a man for myself. My education has cost you many sacrifices, and ought to bring you some- thing in return. You may need money ; but that is not every thing that we live for. You yourself would be glad to see your son rise to eminence, and be a man among his fellows, — which no man ever was as a clerk of a court. I am more than half inclined to think Mr. Gore's advice is good. 42 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. Tt may seem otherwise just now; but I feel a prompting within me that tells me there is some- thing better for me than to be a clerk of courts. My mind is made up.' ' Are you fully resolved ? ' said my father. ' Yes, sir ; I am.' " He did not say another word for a long time, — perhaps half an hour. Then he went on : — " ' Daniel, in the long struggle with poverty and adverse fortune that your mother and I have made to give you and Ezekiel an education, we have often talked over these sacrifices, and the prospects of our children. Your mother has often said to me that she had no fear about Ezekiel ; that he had fixed and steady habits, and an indomitable energy. She had no doubt of his success in life. But as for Daniel, — well, she didn't know about him : he would be either something or nothing. I think your mother was a prophetess, and that the prob- lem is solved to-night. You have fulfilled her prophecy, — you have come to nothing.' " That was the last time he ever mentioned the clerkship to me. " I wrote a letter to the judges, declining the office, and returned to Mr. Gore and told him what I had done. I then went up to Boscawen, and opened a law-office in a red store, with stairs upon the outside, for which I paid a rent of about $15 a year. I lived at home, and walked to and from the office at morning and night. I then re- solved never to leave home during the life of my father, who was growing: old, no matter what AS A LAW STUDENT. 43 might betide. I stayed by him two years. 1 did not, in those two years, make money enough to pay the rent of the office ; but I stayed there until my father died. I closed his eyes in death, and received his parting blessing ; and then I started for Portsmouth, and began my career of life and practice there." Mr. Webster added, that he argued one case before his father as judge ; and that the old man considered it " a creditable performance ; one about which there was nothing to regret." He thought that his father was decidedly gratified by it. CHAPTER m. AT THE BAR. Many anecdotes of Mr. Webster's early career at the bar survive, and a few of them may prop- erly find a place in these pages. Some that are given have been told before, having had the tran- sient circulation of a newspaper paragraph, and some I had from Mr. Webster himself. Joel Parker, formerly chief justice of the New Hampshire Court of Common Pleas, and later pro- fessor of law in Harvard College, who had many opportunities of judging of Mr. Webster's capabili- ties as an advocate, has left his impression of him on record, as follows : — " There is evidence of his early professional ability, as manifested at the September term of 1806, when his argument made such an impression upon a friend of mine, — then a lad of some ten or twelve years, — that, after a lapse of nearly half a century, he distinctly remembers the high encomiums passed upon it. He recollects, he writes, with perfect distinctness the sensation which the speech produced upon the multitude. The court-house was thronged, and all were loud in his praise. As soon as the adjournment took AT THE BAR 45 place, the lawyers dropped into ray informant's father's office, and there the whole of Webster's bearing was eagerly discussed. It was agreed on all hands that he had made an extraordinary effort. One of the lawyers accounted for it by saying, ^ Ah ! Webster has been studying in Boston, and has got a knack of talking ; but let him take it rough and tumble awhile here in the bush, and we shall see whether he will do much better than other folks.' Such testimony as this is valuable. It shows that Webster's future greatness was reflected upon his first professional efforts. His earliest argu- ments at the bar were creditable, even honorable, to his fame in the maturity of his powers. Such men as Judge Jeremiah Smith predicted his future eminence. He never spoke before a jury without exciting admiration and eliciting praise." In his " Life of Judge Smith," Mr. Morison speaks as follows of Mr. Webster's first appearance at the Superior Court in New Hampshire : — "At the court holden in Hillsborough County in 1807, a young man, who had been admitted as an attorney but not as a counsellor, appeared with a cause of no great pecuniary importance, but of some interest and some intricacy. Though not then of such advanced standing at the bar as to be entitled to address the jury, he was yet allowed to examine the witnesses, and briefly state his case both upon the law and facts. Having done this, he handed his brief to Mr. Wilson, the senior counsel, for the full argument of the matter. But the chief justice had noticed him ; and, on leaving the court- 46 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. house, said to a member of the bar that he had never before met such a young man as that. It was Daniel Webster, and this was his first action before the court." Israel W. Kelley, Esq., of Concord, the brother- indaw of Mr. Webster, has left a more minute account of the same trial. He was present in the court, and acting as sheriff. He said that Mr. Webster's reputation as an able advocate was es- tablished at the bar of New Hampshire, by his first argument in the Superior Court at Hopkin- ton, Hillsborough County. The case was tried before Judge Smith, in May, 1807. Mr. Webster not having practised in the Court of Common Pleas two years, as the law then required, could not legally argue a case in the Superior Court. By special permission, however, he took charge of this suit. The action was brought by his client for trespass, against the owner of a pasture adjoining his own. The wall between the enclosures had been thrown down, and the plaintiff's horse had evidently been dragged through the breach from the defendant's pasture after his leg had been broken, which prevented his being driven. Messrs. Atherton and Dana, men of eminent legal ability, were counsel for the defendant. Sheriff Kelley, who was then crier of the court, thus describes the scene : — " When Mr. Webster began to speak, his voice was low, his head was sunk upon his breast, his eyes were fixed upon the floor, and he moved his feet incessantly, backward and forward, as if trying to AT THE BA1{. 47 secure a firmer position. His voice soon increased in power and volume, till it filled the whole house. His attitude became erect, his eye dilated, and his whole coiQitenance was radiant with emotion. The attention of all present was at once arrested. Every eye in the crowded court-room was fixed on the speaker, but my own ; for I was obliged to watch the door, that I might prevent confusion by the throng of spectators that were constantly crowding into the hall." After Mr. Webster opened an office in Boscawen, his first writs were served by Sheriff Kelley upon Messrs. Purdy and Currier, traders in Boscawen. While the j^oung attorney and the sheriff were at dinner, the former proprietors, with a reckless accomplice, expelled the keeper left in possession by the officer of the law, and by force recovered possession of the shop. Returning to the scene of action, the sheriff began a parley with the intrud- ers, and tried to convince them of the magnitude of their offence. But Mr. Webster resolved to vindicate practically the majesty of the law ; and accordingly ran for an axe, to batter down the door. Before his return the door was unbarred ; and the sheriff having recovered possession of the property, levied, without judge or jury, a fine of thirty dollars upon the owners for forcibly exclud- ing him. An able and forcible writer, N. P. Rogers, of Plymouth, N. H., who often assumed a rough, quaint style, was well acquainted Math the Web- sters, and was in early life their warm and devoted 48 EEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. friend. The following letter, which he contributed to the " New York Tribune," relates to Daniel Webster's early appearance at the bar ; and i.s w^orth inserting, both as giving a vivid picture of that period of the great statesman's life, and as an amusing literary curiosity. " There 's a town a little south of me, about thh-ty-five miles off, in phiin sight, where they 've held courts for the county. It 's the county of Grafton. They 've held courts there these seventy years. Webster used to come to court there when he was a young lawyer. They say he went to his first court there. I don't know how that is, but he went there when he was almost a boy. I could see him plainly from here. He was singular in his look. Him and his brother ' Zeke ' used to come to court together after a year or two. Daniel came first, though 'Zeke' was the eldest. I can see them now, driving into that little village in their bellows-top chaise, — top thrown back, — driving like Jehu, the chaise bending under them like a close-top in a high wind. I had heard tell of Diomede and Ulysses, — a couple of old Greeks that used to ride in some such lookins; cars as they did, though I believe the Greeks don't ride together. But Daniel and 'Zekiel Webster made me think of them two Greeks. Daniel used to drive very fast. They 'd come in as if they had started long before day ; and it was a sight, in a small place, to see them two ride in together. I could have told either of them thirty miles among a thousand men. " The court-house was a little one-story building that stood on a hill. Daniel made his first speech, they tell me, in that house, and tried his first case there. It was a small case, and the only one he had. He wanted to get it put by. The lawyer on the other side was opposed to it, and Daniel got up and made a speech to the court that made the little old house ring again. They all said — lawyers and judges and people — that they never heard such a speech, or any thing like it. They said he talked like a different creature from any of the rest of them, great or small, — and tiieie were men there AT THE BAR. 49 that were not nmall. There was a man tned for his life in that court, or one soon after, and the judges chose Webster to plead for him ; and, from what I can learn, he never has spoken better since than he did there when he first be- gan. He was a black, raven-haired fellow, with an eye as black as death, and as heavy as a lion's, — and no lion in Africa ever had a voice like him ; and his look was like a lion's, — that same heavy look, not sleejjy, but as if he didn't care about any thing that was going on about him or any thing anywhere else. He didn't look as if he was thinking about any thing ; but as if he loould think like a hurricane if he once got waked up to it. They say the lion looks so when he is quiet. It wasn't an empty look, this of Web- ster's ; but one that didn't seem to see any thing going on worth his while. " 'Zekiel didn't use to speak in the courts for a great many years. The talk was that he couldn't say any thing. They said he 'was a better judge of law than Daniel, but couldn't speak.' He did not need to speak much, for he gen- erally put his cases into such a shape that he got them without coming to trial. Nobody ever knew how or why, but Zeke Webster's cases hardly ever came to trial. After some years he got to helping try other lawyer's cases ; and then he spoke, and as well as a man could speak, — more sensible, they said, than Daniel himself. It was not till after Daniel left the State ; and some thought he didn't speak before, because Daniel was present. " There was a lawyer by the name of Parker Noyes, that used to go to court the same time with the Websters, — a better lawyer, it was said, than either of them ; but he hadn't Daniel's power of talk, — a nicely read lawyer and fatal pleader. Webster used to dread to meet him, he said. He knew the books and the cases, and was an authority about the court-house. Webster would sometimes be engaged to argue a case just as it was coming to trial. That would set him to thinking. It wouldn't wrinkle his forehead, but made him restless. He would shift his feet about, and run his hand up over his forehead, through his Indian-black hair, and lift his upper lip and show his teeth, which were aa 4 50 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. white as a hound's. He would got up, and go across the bar and sit down by Parker Noyes, and ask him where such a law was decided, and the names of the cases, — not what the law was, but where it was in the books. What it was he decided for himself. Noyes would tell him where it was, and then he would go back to his seat ; and when the case would come up for trial, he would up and pour out the law and cite his authorities, as if he had spent montlis in poring upon it, — his own mind arriving at the decisions of the sages of the law without having seen the books, and on the spur of the moment; but, for the sake of the judge, he would ask Parker Noyes to tell him where the authorities had written it down. " Parker Noyes was a great advocate himself. You proba- bly never heard of him in your State of New York. Pie was a man that didn't wish ever to be heard of, or talked about, anywhere. A man of no vanity whatever. He wasn't an orator ; but his talk was very poweiful both to the jury and the judges. He got such credit for candor and honesty among the people, that the jury put as much confidence in what he said as if he had been a witness or a judge. He spoke to them more like a judge than an advocate ; and he never was excited or disturbed. 'Zekiel Webster, who was a dif- ferent man, seeing Noyes get up once in his calm way to address the jury in an important case, whispered to a lawyer sitting by him, ' See how undisturbed Noyes is ; cantharides would not excite him ! ' He was one of the gi-eat New Hampshire lawyers. Richard Fletcher lived in the same town with him, before he left the State, and owed much of his legal sharpness, no doubt, to the training he got by the side of such an antagonist. Parker Noyes, I believa did not go to Massachusetts, — 'the way of all' the New Hampshire great (besides those that went elsewhere, Mr. Tribune)." The reason of Mr. Webster's early removal from Boscaweu to Portsmouth, according to a gentleman who knew the facts, was that, " having an engage- ment to argue a cause in Rocldngham County, he I AT THE BAR. 51 was, at the close of the argument, forthwith re- tained in nearly all the remaining cases standing at that time upon the docket. Soon after his removal, his practice extended to all the counties in the State." His practice, indeed, increased so rapidly that he could not long say, as he did in a letter writ- ten in the fall of 1807 : " Thursday I tarried in Concord ; Friday I came to this place [Ports- mouth] ; Saturday I 14 ot my office swept and my books put up, and this week I have been quite at leisure." Before long he found himself contending wdth the first lawyers of the State. He said that " they compelled him to study ; and, when once enlisted in this warfare, he was never allowed to doff his harness or sheathe his sword." His fees were, how- ever, moderate. He once said : " I went the cir- cuit of all the courts in New Hampshire, and engaged in every case in which I would consent to take a part. After such a term I once computed all my earnings, and found they only amounted to five hundred dollars." The following story of Mr. Webster's meeting with that rough and ready veteran and patriot, General John Stark, has been told before ; but I now give it as Mr. Webster himself related it to me. It was while he was living at Portsmouth, that he was once obliged to go to Concord to attend court. The roads being bad, he adopted the familiar custom of the day, and went on horse- 52 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. back, carrying his papers in the saddle-bags. As he reached Hooksett, now Manchester, it began to rain. It was in the afternoon; and, finding a quiet, comfortable-looking hotel, he thought he would stop and spend the night, and ride up to Concord early the next morning. So he put up his horse, and went into the bar-room, where he found a half-dozen neighbors seated around the fire, drinking flip. Prominent among them was old General Stark. His house was just opposite, on the other side of the river ; and everybody in that neighborhood knew him. "When I went in," said Mr. Webster, "there was a pause in the conversation, as there was likely to be on the entrance of a stranger. I sat down by the fire, and there was a dead silence for some time. I observed that old Stark was getting into a doze, and did not seem to notice any thing. Pretty soon the conversation started up again, and the restraint imposed by the advent of a stranger wore away. " ^ What do you think such a man is worth ? ' said one. " ^ I guess he's worth five hundred dollars.' " * I don't believe he is.' " Old Stark roused himself, and remarked : — " ' Well, I don't know what he is worth ; but I know what / am worth. They say a thing is worth what it will fetch. If that's so, I'm w^orth just forty pounds, for I once fetched that. In the French AVar I was taken by the Indians, and they took forty pounds as my ransom.' AT THE BAR. 53 •' This raised a roar of laughter ; and now Gen- eral Stark looked around, and for the first time noticed the stranger. " ' Who are you ? ' said he. " I thought that was rather a rude way of ac- costing a person; but of course any thing was permitted to the rough old hero of Bennington. " ' Who are you, I say ? ' " ^ My name ? ' '^ '■ Yes, your name. What's your name ? " ' My name is Webster.' " * Where are you from ? ' " ' From Portsmouth.' " ' Your name is Webster, and you are fron Portsmouth. Where are you going ? ' " ' To Concord.' " ' To Concord ; well, where did you come from originally ? What Websters do you belong to ?' " ' I came from Salisbury.' " ' Oh ho ! from Salisbury. Are you one of the Salisbury Websters ? ' " ' Yes, sir.' " * Are you any way related to old Captaib Eb. ? " ' Slightly, sir ; he was my father.' " ' Are you a son of old Captain Eb. ? Let me see you [turning me round]. Why, I declare! Well, I am inchned to think you may be. In the war, we could not tell whether Captain Webster's face was a natural color or blackened by powder. You must be his son, for you are a cursed sight blacker than he was ! ' "At this, a great laugh arose at my expense, 54 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. and the whole company were on good terms witli me at once." While Mr. Webster was living at Portsmouth, he had occasion one night to be out about the " small hours." It was an intensely cold, clear, moon- light night in December ; the ground was thickly spread with snow, and the streets were quite deserted. As he was proceeding homeward, he observed a woman at some distance in front of him ; and from the lateness of the hour, the inclemency of the weather, and her peculiar movements, his at- tention was attracted to her. She would trot on a little way, then stop and look back and listen, and then walk on again. Mr. Webster, keeping himself out of sight, atten- tively observed her movements. She was going the same way that he was ; and, on coming to the street that turned toward his own residence, she stopped again, looked cautiously around for a mo- ment, and then went down the street. Mr. Web- ster's house stood with its gable end toward the street ; from his front door-step to the sidewalk he had caused to be laid some loose boards over the snow. At his gate, the woman paused for a moment, looked around again, and quickly picked up one of the boards, put it under her arm, and made off. Mr. Webster continued carefully to follow. The poor woman hurried as fast as she could with her burden to a distant part of the town ; and, coming to a small and ruinous wooden tenement;, entered and closed the door. AT THE BAR. 55 The next day she received, to her surprise it may be supposed, a cord of wood. It was during his residence in Portsmouth that Mr. Webster became the owner of a parcel of land in the vicinity of the White Mountains, with the buildings standing thereon, for the valuable con- sideration of his services as counsel in an important suit in one of the courts. The premises were known by the imposing name of " the farm." He left the tenant, who was living there at the time when he acquired the legal title to " the farm," in possession. After his removal to Boston, he heard nothing of his White Mountain estate for several years. One summer, as he journeyed north with his wife in quest of recreation, he resolved to turn aside from the travelled road, and ascertain the true condition of his property. He found a very miserable hut upon it, occupied by an aged wo- man as the only tenant of his farm. He asked for a glass of water, which she readily served in a tin dipper. He then began to make inquiries about her prosperity, and the present condition of things around her. She said that she did not own the farm, but that it belonged to a lawyer down in Boston by the name of Webster. " Does he often come to see you, my good wo- man ? " said Mr. Webster. " No," replied she, " he has never been near his laud since I lived here." " Well," said he, " what rent does he make you pay for the occupancy of his farm ? " " Rent ! " she exclaimed, " I don't pay him any 56 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER rent. It is bad enough to live here without pay- ing any thing for it ; and if he don't fix up the house, I don't mean to stay here freezing to death much longer ! " " Well, madam," returned the kind-hearted pro- prietor, " it is a pretty hard case, I confess. If you will accept this bill [five doUars] towards your holding on for another year, I will speak to Mr. Webster when I next see him, and perhaps he will do something more for you." So he took final leave of his valuable farm and his interesting tenant. Judge Parker gave the following, as an opinion which Mr. Webster expressed to him in regard to the administration of the law in New Hampshire when he practised there. Mr. Webster said that he had practised law before old Justice Jackman at Boscawen, who received his commission from George II., and all the way up to the court of Chief Justice Marshall at Washington ; and " he had never found any place where the law was ad- ministered with so much precision and exactness as in the county of Rockingham." Mr. Webster's rapid rise in professional distinc- tion at Portsmouth soon brought him into close connection with the leading lawyers and judges of the State ; and, among these, perhaps the most eminent figures at that time were Jeremiah Smith and Jeremiah Mason. Of these two great lights. Judge Smith's biographer says that " both were profoundly learned, but Smith the more accom- plished scholar; both were profound thinkers, but ¥\ ■«i AT THE BAR. 57 Mason's the more original mind. They were pow- erful combatants, less unequal than unlike. With perhaps equal industry in the preparation of causes, the one fortified his position with accumulated au- thorities, the other trusted more to his native strength and the force of reason." Of Judge Smith Mr. Webster always spoke with veneration. In a letter to the judge's widow re- questing an epitaph, he wrote : " For what I am in professional life I owe much to Judge Smith. I revere his character ; I shall cherish his memory as long as I live. Would that an impression of his virtues and talents, fresh and deep as that which exists in my own heart, could be made immortal in stone ! " He introduced Judge Smith to Chancel- lor Kent, and his letter bore the following testi- mony to his respect for the New Hampshire jurist: " There are few men in the world, I think, more to your taste. When I came to the bar, he was chief justice of the State. It was a day of the 'gladsome light' of jurisprudence. His friends (and I was one of them) thought he must be made governor. For this office we persuaded him to leave the bench, and that same ' gladsome light ' cheered us no longer." Mr. Webster's association with Jeremiah Mason w^as yet more intimate, and his recollections of that great advocate were far more minute and interesting. Of Mr. Mason's legal abilities he had the highest opinion. Indeed, he did not hesitate to pronounce him the first lawyer of his age. These men, like Hannibal and Scipio of old 58 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. mutually admired each other's greatness. Mr, Mason once said to a friend : " If there is any greater man than Webster in our country, it has not been my fortune to meet him or read of him." When Mr. Mason had grown old, and had virtually retired from business, Mr. Webster once invited him to take a tour with him into the country for recreation. Mr. Mason, knowing the desire of the people to see and hear Mr. Webster when he trav- elled, replied with characteristic bluntness : " No ! I should as soon go with a caravan." Mr. Webster's opinion of Mr. Mason is repeat- edly expressed in his letters. Writing to his brother from Washington on March 28, 1814, he says : " Mr. Mason is growing to be a great man. He ranks in the Senate, / think, next to King and Gore. He has made some very excellent speeches." Mr. Webster first met Jeremiah Mason on the occasion of a criminal trial. A certain Col. — a Democrat of note — had been put on trial on a charge of counterfeiting. The case against him was more than serious, for many acts of passing counterfeit money had been brought home to him. The Democrats, however, were very anxious that the colonel should be acquit- ted. Mason was secured as the prisoners coun- sel, and money raised to support the defence. On the very eve of the trial the Attorney-General, who was addicted to drinking, failed the prosecu- tion ; whereupon Mr. Webster was called upon to act in his place. Mason had heard of his AT THE BAR. 59 promise, but remarked in liis plain way that " he had heard similar things of young men before," and did not disturb himself about his antagonist. He soon found out that he had no common adversary to deal with. Webster " came down upon him," as he said, " like a thunder-shower." The prisoner was, indeed, acquitted ; but this was, in Mr. Ma- son's own opinion, rather owing to the political leaning of the jury than to the superiority of the defence. " Mr. Mason," says Judge Smith's biographer, " was particularly struck with the high, open, and manly ground taken by Mr. Webster, who, instead of availing himself of any technical advantage in pushing the prisoner hard, confined himself to the main points of law and fact. He said that he had never since known Mr. Webster to show greater legal ability iu'any argument." The following anecdote of the two lawyers ia furnished by a friend and admirer of both : " I happened one day," he says, " to enter the court- room at Portsmouth, where I often went to hear Webster and Mason, who were always opposed to each other in important cases. I accidentally overheard the following dialogue between them, when a new case was called, and the clerk of the court asked who the counsel were on each side : u i "VVhich side are you on in this case ? ' said Mason to Webster. " ' I don't know,' was the reply ; ' take your choice.' " Mr. Webster told me many interesting anecdotes 60 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. about this honored rival of his early triumphs. " When I went to Portsmouth," said he, " I was a young man of twenty-four, and Mr. Mason was forty. He was then at the head of the bar, and was employed in nearly all the great cases ; a man who was a terror to all young lawyers, because he was not conciliatory in his manner. I had a sort of awe for Mr. Mason when I went to Portsmouth ; but, in a residence and practice of nine years, nothing ever occurred to mar our friendship, although in almost all cases we went the circuit of the State on opposite sides. We travelled, boarded, and roomed together when on circuit. Mr. Mason was friendly and kind, and was one of my earliest, truest, and best friends. In only one instance did he ever treat me unkindly. It was in court at Portsmouth. I was proud of Mr. Mason's friendship, as any young man would be ; and it was remarked by others, 'how fond Mr. Mason appeared to be of young Webster ! ' But on this occasion something irritated him in court, and he turned upon me with the ferocity of a tiger, and assailed me as bitterly as his tongue was capable of doing. I was grieved, and could not retort. I went home dejDressed, and my wife asked me what the matter was. I replied : ' Mr. Mason has treated me unkindly ; ' and I was speaking of it when Mr. Mason's servant came in, and said that his master wished to see me at his office. I immediately went thither. Mr. Mason met me in the most cordial manner, and said : ' I was irritated about something, when my eye fell on you, and I vented my feelings AT THE BAIL 61 in the way I did. Don't think of it, for I meant nothing of the sort.' ^' I was most glad to have the matter end so ; and that was the only time he ever treated me mikindly in any way." " One day," said Mr. Webster, " Mr. Mason said to me : — " ' You graduated at Dartmouth College — I at Yale. I never was at Dartmouth at commence- ment ; would not you like to go ? ' " ' Yes ; I should be delighted if I had the means to afford it,' I replied." Mr. Mason and Mr. Webster used to ride about together in a chaise, carrying their luggage in a trunk tied under the vehicle. " *^ Well,' said Mr. Mason, ' I have been thinking it over, and I should like to go up to Hanover to commencement,' and there is no reason why I should not. And besides, on the way there, at Enfield, lives a curious community of Shakers, in whom I feel interested. One of them, named Lucas, applied to me not long ago to assist in col- lecting a debt, and I became quite interested in the people and their curious customs. If you have a mind to go up to Hanover, I '11 take you in my chaise, and we will stop and dine with these Shakers.' " ' I shall be delighted to go,' I replied. '- So the day was set ; and, until it arrived. Mr. Mason talked of nothing but this excursion. We planned it all in advance ; we were to start early, stop at Enfield and take dinner, spend an 02 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. hour or two with the Shakers, and then, in the cool of the evening, drive up to Hanover. The next day we would attend commencement; and on the third dav return home. Mr. Mason was as delighted as a boy, and we started on this pleasant excursion according to the plan, and reached the Shaker village just about twelve o'clock. Mr. Mason talked all the way about the Shakers, — of their mode of life, what could induce them to live in seclusion, w^hat a quiet people they were, and so on. As we drove up to the gate, the women were just passing from their dining-room across the green, a little above where we tied the horse. Mason had a long whip in his hand, and as they passed we deferentially stepped aside from their path. I noticed that the women, as they passed, dressed in their plain attire, looked at Mason's tall figure and smiled, and finally giggled outright. I knew his sensitiveness, and I attempted to draw his attention away ; but the situation became pain- ful, until the procession was out of sight. We moved towards the house, and pretty soon two or three Shakers came out. They looked at Mr. Mason in astonishment; they gazed at his feet, his head, and his legs, and walked around him to get a good view. I kept as far behind as I could, so as to avoid the coming wrath. Mason spoke up and said : ' We are going up to Hanover to at- tend commencement, and thought we would come this way. We have heard something about your people, and, if you would bait our horse and give us a little dinner, we should be grateful. We AT THE BAR. C3 have come from tlie lower part of the State.' In- stead of sa^dng, ' Certainly,' taking the horse, and giving us their best hospitality, they were evi- dently awe-struck at Mason's height, and stood still and stared. At last one of them said : — " ' Thou must be Jeremiah Mason, of Portsmouth. Friend Lucas saw Mr. Mason in Portsmouth, and since he returned he has talked of nothing but his extraordinary stature. We saw thee come in, and we thought thou must be he.' " ' Yes,' he replied, ' I am Jeremiah Mason ; but I did not come here to be insulted. Come, Web- ster, let's leave this place.' " ' But,' said I, ' wait a moment.' " ' No ! ' he retorted ; ' don't talk to me ; come along ! I did not come here to be insulted by a pack of broad-brims ! ' " They now begged him to stop and dine ; but he had begun to untie his horse, and would hear nothing. ' Come along, Webster ! ' cried he, ' I've had enough of these people ; I did not come here to be insulted ! ' So I got into the chaise, and he put on the whip, driving the horse at top speed till we reached the next tavern. And, from that day to this, he has never said ' Shaker ' to me." Mr. Webster said that Mason, at various periods of his life, was differently affected by his gigantic stature. When young, he was annoyed by it, and could not bear an allusion to his height. " Proba- bly," said Mr. Webster, " the stoop in his gait, which was quite marked in old age, was first acquired by an instinctive effort to seem shorter 64 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. than he was." In middle age, however, Mason seemed to him to change in his feehng as to his bodily peculiarity, and to become actually proud of his majestic port. In old age he became quite indifferent to what was said about it. Mr. Webster thought that the homely and blunt style wliich Mason adopted was assumed as a sort of bravado, and an exhibition of contempt for the remarks on his peculiarities. He was clownish, and could not be any thing else, he said. His voice had a strong nasal twang, and his movements were the most un- couth possible. Once Mr. Choate, in order to draw out Mr. Webster's recollections of Mason, said to him : " Your opinion of Jeremiah Mason is, I thhik, that he was, take him for all in all, your beau- ideal of a lawyer." Mr. Webster leaned forward on his elbows, and replied : — " I have known Jeremiah Mason long-er, I mav say, than I have known any eminent man. He was the first man of distinction in the law whom I knew ; and, when I first became acquainted with him, he was in full practice. I knew that genera- tion of lawyers as a younger man knows those who are his superiors in age, — by tradition, reputation, and hearsay, and by occasionally being present and hearing their efforts. In this way I knew Luther Martin, Edmund Randolph, Goodloe Hart, and all those great lights of the law ; and, by the way, I think, on the whole, that was an abler bar than the present one, — of course with some bril- AT THE BAR. 65 liant exceptions. Of the present bar of the United States I think I am able to form a pretty fair opinion, having an intimate personal knowledge of them in the local and federal courts ; and this I can say, that I regard Jeremiah Mason as eminently superior to any other lawyer whom I ever met. I should rather, with my own experience (and I have had some pretty tough experience with him), meet them all combined in a case, than to meet him alone and single-handed. He was the keenest lawyer that I ever met or read about. If a man had Jeremiah Mason, and he did not get his case, no human ingenuity or learning could get it. He drew from a very deep fountain. Yes," smilingly added Mr. Webster, to the great amusement of the company, " I should think he did, — from his height ! " Mr. Webster once told me a story of Mr. Mason, aproi^os of his connection with the defence of E. K. Avery, — a Methodist minister who was accused of murdering a Mrs. Cornell at Fall River. The Methodists, feeling the reputation of their de- nomination to be at stake, raised a large subscrip- tion, and employed Mr. Mason to defend Mr. A-very. The trial was a long and tedious one ; and Mr. Mason was much perplexed and harassed by the constant stream of impertinent inquiry and suggestion which came from the prisoner's friends. A great deal of testimony was taken in the trial, which lasted for three weeks ; and, as Mason was then old, and about giving up his profession, he wanted a quiet night to prepare himself physically 66 RKMIXLSCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. for engaging in the final arguments. He knew by experience that he must take precautions to avoid being roused from his sleep by some of these med- dling friends ; so he told the barkeeper at his hotel that he was going to bed early, and that he did not wish to be, and would not be, disturbed after he had retired to his room. He went to bed. About eleven o'clock, a ministerial-looking person came in, and said to the barkeeper : — " I want to see Mr. Mason." " You can't see him to-night. He is very tired, and gave orders that he should not be disturbed." " But I must see him. If I should not see him to-night, and if to-morrow the case should go wrong, I never should forgive myself." " Well," returned the barkeeper, " I'll show you his room." This he accordingly did. Mr. Mason rose up in bed, and exclaimed to the barkeeper : — What did I tell you, sir ? " Well," replied he, " the man must explain." Mr. Mason thought the best way to get out of the difficulty was to hear what the intruder had to say ; and he told him, rather roughly, to begin. " I had retired to rest about an hour ago," said the man, " after having commended this case, Brother Avery, and everybody connected with it to the Throne of Grace, in fervent prayer that the truth might be elicited; and I do not know how long I had slept, when I was awakened by an au- dible voice. I saw an angel standing right at the foot of the bed, just as distinctly as I see you ; and a AT THE BAR. 67 ill a veiy distinct tone of voice, it said : ^ Mr. Avery is innocent of this crime,' and immediately van- ished. Of this, sir, I am ready to take my oath." Mr. Mason looked at him with an expression of mixed indignation and contempt ; but was so much struck, after a moment, by the ludicrousness of the scene, that he began to question the man. " You yourself saw this angel ? " '' Yes." " And he immediately vanished ? " "He did." " Do you think there is any possibility of seeing him again ? " "It maybe." " Well, if you should happen to see him, you just ask him how he could prove it ! " Among Mr. Webster's reminiscences of his pro- fessional career at Portsmouth, and of Jeremiah Ma- son's connection with it, was one relating to a case in which a man named Bramble was implicated. Matthew Bramble, it appears, was a wealthy resi- dent of Portsmouth, and, as the sequel proved, an unscrupulous man. His social position was good, but a feeling of distrust towards him existed in the community. It seems that Bramble had given to a man named Brown an annuity bond, agreeing to pay him one hundred dollars a year as long as he lived. This was to keep dormant a title to some real estate. Bramble had more than once tried to persuade Brown to take a " lump " sum of money, and cancel the bond ; but this Brown persistently declined to do, and in this he was supported by the 68 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. advice of his friends. After in vain offering one thousand dollars, Bramble resorted to the following method of getting rid of his obligation. He was accustomed, when he paid the hundred dollars, to endorse it on the bond. The next chance he got, he endorsed, not one hundred dollars, but one thousand dollars, adding, " in full consideration of and cancel- ling this bond." Brown, who could not read or write, unsuspectingly signed his mark to this en- dorsement. Bramble then coolly handed him back the bond, and of course said nothing of the matter. When the year came round, an altercation took place between them. Bramble said : " I owe you nothing ; I paid you a thousand dollars, and it is certified on your bond." Brown was a poor shoe- maker — simple-minded, truthful, weak — not ca- pable of coping with this wily scamp. He was friendless, while Bramble was a rich man. Poor Brown did not know what to do. He had con- vinced his neighbors that he was right. He went to Jeremiah Mason, who told him he was Matthew Bramble's lawyer. Mr. Mason had asked Bramble about the matter, and the latter had showed the bond ; and Mr. Mason probably believed him. A friend then advised Brown to go to Mr. Web- ster ; and, after hearing his story, Mr. Webster was quite convinced of the truth of Brown's state- ment. He had no confidence in Bramble. In re- lating the story, he said to me : " I knew nothing positively against Bramble, but something im- pressed me that he was not a man of honor. I was at once satisfied that he had committed this AT THE BAR. 69 fraud upon Brown, and I told the latter that 1 would sue Bramble for the annuity. He said he had nothing to give me in payment. I said I wanted nothing. I sent Bramble a letter, and he made his appearance in my office. " ' I should hke to know,' said he sharply, ' if you are going to take up a case of that kind in Portsmouth. It seems to me that you don't know on which side your bread is buttered.' " * This man has come to me,' I replied, * w^ith- out friends, and has told me a plain, straightforward story; and it sounds as if it were true. It is not a made-up story. I shall pursue this thing and sue you, unless you settle it.' " Bramble went to Mr. Mason, who afterwards said to Mr. Webster : " I think you have made a mis- take. Bramble is a man of influence. It can't be that the fellow tells the truth. Bramble would not do such a thing as that." Mr. Webster replied : " He has done just such a thing as that, and I shall try the suit." So the preliminary steps were taken, and the suit was brought. The case came on at Exeter in the Supreme Court, Judge Smith on the bench. It created great excitement. Bramble's friends were incensed at the charge of forgery; but Brown, too, in his humble way, had his friends. Mr. Webster said : — " I never in my life was more badly prepared for a case. There was no evidence for Brown, and what to do I did not know. But I had begun the suit, and was going to run for luck, perfectly satis- 70 liEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. fieri that I was right. There were Bramble and his friends, with Mason ; and poor Brown only had his counsel. And Mason began to sneer a Uttle, saying, ' That is a foolish case.' " Well, a person named Lovejoy was then living in Portsmouth ; and when there is a great deal of litigation, as there was in Portsmouth and many towns in New Hampshire, there will always be one person of a kind not easily described, — a shrewd man who was mixed up in all sorts of affairs. Lovejoy was a man of this kind, and was a witness in nearly all the cases ever tried in that section. He was an imperturbable witness, and never could be shaken in his testimony. Call Lovejoy, and he would swear that he was present on such an occa- sion ; and he seemed to live by giving evidence in this way. I was getting a little anxious about the case. I was going to attempt to prove that Brown had been appealed to by Bramble for years to give up his bond, and take a sum of money, and that he had always stoutly refused ; that he had no uses for money, and had never been in the receipt of money ; and that he could not write and was easily imposed upon. But although I felt that I was right, I began to fear that I should lose the case. " A Portsmouth man, who believed in Brown's story, came to me just before the case was called, and whispered in my ear : ' I saw Lovejoy talking with Bramble just now in the entry, and he took a paper from him.' I thanked the man, told him that was a pretty important thing to know, and AT THE BAR. 71 asked him to say nothing about it. In the course of the trial, Mr. Mason called Lovejoy, and he took the oath. He went upon the stand and testihed that some eight or ten months before he was in Brown's shop, and that Brown mended his shoes for him. As he was sitting in the shop, he natu- rally fell into conversation about the bond, and said to Brown : ' Bramble wants to get back the bond, — why don't you sell it to him ? ' ' Oh,' said Brown, ' I have ; he wanted me to do it, and, as life is uncertain, I thought I might as well take the thousand dollars.' He went on to testify that the ' said Brown ' told him so and so ; and when he expressed himself in that way, I knew he was being prompted from a written paper. The ex- pression was an unnatural one for a man to use in ordinary conversation. It occurred to me in an instant that Bramble had given Lovejoy a paper, on which was set down what he wanted him to testify. There sat Mason, full of assurance, and for a moment I hesitated. Now, I thought, I will ' make a spoon or spoil a horn ! ' I took the pen from behind my ear, drew myself up, and marched outside of the bar to the witness-stand. ' Sir ! ' I exclaimed to Lovejoy, ^ give me the paper from which you are testifying ! ' In an instant he pulled it out of his pocket ; but before he had it quite out, he hesitated and attempted to put it back. I seized it in triumph. There was his testimony in Bram- ble's handwriting ! Mr. Mason got up and claimed the protection of the court. Judge Smith inquired the meaning of this proceeding. I said : ' Prfjvi- 72 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. dence protects the innocent when they are friend- less. I think I could satisfy the court and my learned brother, who, of course, was ignorant of this man's conduct, that I hold in Mr. Bramble's handwriting the testimony of the very respectable witness who is on the stand.' The court adjourned, and I had nothing further to do. Mason told his client that he had better settle the affair as quickly as possible. Bramble came to my office, and as he entered, I said : ' Don't you come in here ! I don't want any thieves in my office.' ' Do what- ever you please with me, Mr. Webster,' he replied ; * I will do whatever you say.' ' I will do nothing without witnesses — we must arrans-e this matter.' I consulted Mr. Mason, and he said he did not care how I settled it. So I told Bramble that, in the first place, there must be a new life-bond for one hundred dollars a year, and ample security for its payment ; and that he must also pay Brown five hundred dollars, and my fees, which I should charge pretty roundly. To all this he assented, and thus the case ended." Mr. Webster told me this at Exeter. We went over there from Portsmouth, dined, and went to the academy, where he had fitted himself for col- lege, and to the court-house, where this Bramble trial took place. After dinner he took his nap, and, while he was in his room, several old men who were in the hotel came to me and said they had known Mr. Webster when he was a young man, and that they should like to see him. I said : " Certainly, after he finishes his nap." So when AT THE BAR. 73 he got up, I said : " These old men would like to speak to you." He came out into the bar- room, received them cordially, and was evidently very glad to see them. They talked over the events of the past quarter of a century with much interest. At last one of them spoke up and said : — " Would you have any objection, Mr. Webster, to answering a question ? " " Certainly not." "Do you remember the case of Bramble and Brown, the shoemaker ? " " Oh, yes." " Well, how did you know that Lovejoy had that paper in his pocket ? We have been thinking of that ever since, and I was determined, if I ever saw you, to ask you how it was." After a hearty laugh, Mr. Webster satisfied their curiosity. Mr. Webster's high respect for Mr. Mason's judgment is evinced in a letter which he wrote to him in February, 1824, in which the following passage occurs : " Of the compliments my Greek speech has received, I value your letter more than all ; for although you say, of course, as much as you think, I presume your real opinion is so favor- able that you believe the speech reputable. I am quite satisfied with that." Mr. Webster delivered a eulogy on Jeremiah Mason before the Suffolk Bar, in which he said : " The proprieties of this occasion compel me, with whatever reluctance, to refrain from the in- dulgence of the personal feelings which arise in my 74 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. heart, upon the death of one with whom I have cultivated a sincere, affectionate, and unbroken friendship, from the day when I first commenced my professional career, to the closing hour of his life. I will not say of the advantages which I Iiave derived from his intercourse and conversa- tion, all that Mr. Fox said of Edmund Burke ; but I am bound to say, that of my own professional discipline and attainments, whatever they may be, I owe much to that close attention to the discharge of my duties which I was compelled to pay, for nine successive years, from day to day, by Mr. Mason's efforts at the same bar. Fas est ah hoste doceri ; and I must have been unintelligent, in- deed, not to have learned something from the constant displays of that power which I had so much occasion to see and feel." But few anecdotes of Mr. Webster's manner at the bar in examining witnesses and meeting the assaults of his adversaries have been recorded. Many pleasing incidents of his life as an advocate stm exist in the memories of living men ; but for want of a scribe they are likely to be forgotten. When Mr. Webster, in company with Professor Ticknor, paid a visit to ex-President Madison in 1824, Mr. Madison remarked, in conversation, that he had often, in his pubHc life, received credit for more wisdom than he really possessed; and yet the circumstances in any given case seemed fairly to warrant the public m forming their estimate of his abilities. Mr. Webster replied that the same thing had undoubtedly happened to every man AT THE BAR. 75 engaged in public affairs. The same had been true of himself. He said that, in the first years of his professional life, a blacksmith called on him for advice respecting the title to a small estate bequeathed to him by his father. The terms of the will were peculiar, and the kind of estate transmitted was doubtful. An attempt had been made to annul the will. Mr. Webster ex- amined the case, but was unable to give a definite opinion upon the matter for want of authorities. He looked through the law libraries of Mr. Mason and other legal gentlemen for authorities, but in vain. He ascertained what works he needed for consultation, and ordered them from Boston at an expense of fifty dollars. He spent the leisure hours of some weeks in going through them. He success- fully argued the case when it came on for trial ; and it was decided in his favor. The blacksmith was in ecstasies ; for his Uttle all had been at stake. He called for his attorney's bill. Mr. Webster, knowing his poverty, charged him only fifteen dollars, intending to suffer the loss of money paid out, and to lose the time expended in securing the verdict. Years passed away, and the case was for- gotten ; but not the treasured knowledge by which it was won. On one of his journeys to Washington, Mr. Webster spent a few days in New York city. While he was there, Aaron Burr waited on him for advice in a very important case, then pending in the State court. He told him the facts on which it was founded. Mr. Webster saw, in a moment, that it was an exact counterpart to the blacksmith's will 76 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. case. On being asked if he could state the law applicable to it, he at once replied that he could. He proceeded to quote decisions bearing upon the case, going back to the time of Charles 11. As he went on with his array of principles and authori- ties, all cited with the precision and order of a table of contents, Mr. Burr arose in astonishment, and asked, with some warmth : — " Mr. Webster, have you been consulted before in this case ? " "^ Most certainly not," he replied. "I never heard of your case till this evening." " Very well," said Mr. Burr, " proceed." Mr. Webster concluded the rehearsal of his au- thorities, and received from Mr. Burr the warmest praise of his profound knowledge of the law, and a fee large enough to remunerate him for all the time and trouble spent on the blacksmith's case. The following anecdote relates to the period of Mr. Webster's practice at the Portsmouth bar. It appears that, some years before, a certain teamster, named John Greenough, living in Grafton County, who was in the habit of stopping at Ebenezer Web- ster's house on his way to and from Boston, had on a certain occasion come within a mile or two of the house, and could get no further, owing to the weight of his load and the badness of the roads. He there- upon sent to Colonel Webster, and begged the loan of a span of horses. " Dan " was at once sent back with the horses. He was roughly dressed, wearing an old straw hat, and looking the stalwart country lad that he was. The teamster thanked him for AT THE BAR. 77 coming to his assistance, and proceeded on his way, and " Dan " was soon out of his thoughts. Years after, the incident was recalled to his mind under these circumstances : The teamster had been brought into litigation on account of a question respecting the title to his farm. His whole prop- erty was staked in the case. He engaged Moses P. Payson, of Bath, as his counsel ; but, being very anxious about the result, he allowed Mr. Payson to associate another lawyer with him. A few days after, the teamster was told that Mr. Webster had been engaged. He remarked that he did not know any lawyer of that name, and asked if he was from Boston. " No," replied Mr. Payson ; " he is Daniel Webster, son of old Ebenezer, of Salis- bury." " What! " exclaimed the teamster, " that little black stable-boy that once brought me some horses ! Then I think we might as well give up the case." He was told that the trial could not be postponed, and that they must make the best of it. The case was duly called. The teamster, with a gloomy countenance, took his place in court. When his turn came, Mr. Webster rose to make the closing plea. The teamster looked at him with a kind of idle curiosity, and something like con- tempt; but as his advocate f)roceeded with his argument, and brought the powers of his great mind to bear upon the subject, the man became wrapt up in his words, and gradually drew nearer to where he was standing. He listened with breathless attention until Mr. Webster closed ; when Mr. Payson turned and asked, — 78 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. " What do you think of him now ? " " Think ! " exclaimed the teamster. " Why, I think he is an angel sent from heaven to save me from ruin, and my wife and children from misery ! " The case was won in due course, and the team- ster returned home triumphant and happy. CHAPTER IV. AT THE BAR. — Continued. Mr. Webster, in reflecting upon his qualities as a lawyer, was convinced that they did not lie in the direction of the bench. His talents, he saw, were less judicial than forensic. He wrote to a friend,^ in 1840, as follows: "For my own part, I could never be a judge. There never was a time when I would have taken the office of chief jus- tice of the United States, or any other judicial station. I believe the truth may be that I have mixed so much study of politics with my study of law, that, though I have some respect for myself as an advocate, and some estimate of my knowl- edge of general principles, yet I am not confident of possessing aU the accuracy and precision of knowledge which the bench requires." His main strength as a lawyer, indeed, rested upon his " knowledge of general principles." He read books in early life, and treasured in his mind the great maxims of the law and the famous decisions which largely control and direct practice at the bar. In later years he seldom consulted authorities. After his judgment had been ma* 1 Mr. Ketchum. 80 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. tiired by severe discipline, he trusted to its prompt- ings. In difficult cases he often assumed what the law must be, and made his brief accordingly. He sometimes wrote down the positions he should take and the heads of the arguments he should present, and left it to his junior counsel to look up the au- thorities. He was seldom at fault in his opinions of the law. He knew better what the law must be in a given case than what it really was in the reports. Before he left New Hampshire, he had adopted, to some extent, this self-reliant method of pleading. He sometimes asked for the recollec- tions of a brother lawyer about a legal point, as he entered the court-room, to see if they agreed with his own impressions. Parker Noyes, alriady re- ferred to, was a legal oracle in the New Hampshire courts. He was quite as often consulted as Black- stone by members of the bar. In one instance, at Plymouth, Mr. Webster said to Mr. Noyes : — " I have been asked to take charge of an impor- tant case to-day, involving such and such princi- ples. I have no authorities at hand, but I shall assume that the law is so [stating his position]. Is this right ? " " It is right in substance," replied Mr. Noyes, *' but I doubt as to details. However, you wiH not err materially if you state the law in your own language." Mr. Noyes said that, on recurring to his authori- ties, he found that Mr. Webster was entirely right. That eminent lawyer, Samuel Dexter, of Boston, had a mental constitution which resembled that of AT THE BAR. 81 Mr. Webster. In 1804, while studvino- in Mr. Gori's office, Mr. Webster wrote down his opinion of some of the distinguished characters at the Boston bar. Of Dexter, he says : — " He is not a great student. Early attention has stored his mind with an immense fund of gen- eral principles, and he trusts his own power in the application. He is generally opposed in causes to Parsons, and their contest is that of exalted minds." These two lawyers sustained to each other a relation similar to that which afterwards existed, in the New Hampshire courts, between Webster and Mason. Parsons and Dexter evidently im- pressed the young student with their manifest greatness. He drew portraits of both at some length. The sketch he has given of Parsons would not be inapphcable to Mason. He says : " The characteristic endowments of his mind are strength and shrewdness ; strength which enables him to support his cause, shrewdness by which he is always ready to retort the salUes of his adver- sary. His manner is steady, forcible, and perfectly perspicuous. He does not address the jury as a mechanical body, to be put in motion by mechani- cal means. He appeals to them as men, and as having minds capable of receiving the ideas in his own. Of course he never harangues. He is never stinted to say just so much on a point, and no more. He knows by the juror's countenance when he is convinced ; and therefore never disgusts him by arguing that of which he is already sensible, or 32 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. \vhich he knows it impossible to impress. A mind thus strong, direct, prompt, and vigorous is culti- vated b}^ habits of the most intense application. A great scholar in every thing, in his profession he is peculiarly great. He is not content with shining on occasions ; he will shine everywhere. As no cause is too great, none is too small for him. He knows the benefit of understanding small circum- stances. 'Tis not enough for him that he has learned the leading points of a cause ; he wQl know every thing. His argument is, therefore, consistent with itself, and its course is so luminous that you are ready to wonder why any one should hesitate to follow him. Facts which are uncertain he with so much art connects with others well proved that you cannot get rid of the former with- out disregarding also the latter. He has no fond- ness for public life, and is satisfied with standing where he is, — at the head of his profession." This youthful sketch reveals the accurate judg- ment and clear statement of facts which marked Mr. Webster in his maturity. It shows, too, the high estimate he then set on superior talents in his profession. The men whom he described, as the di- version of a leisure hour, in a commonplace book of daily expenses, were undoubtedly his models. He studied them at the bar and in private life. He was impressed with their eminent abilities and their unquestioned success ; and thus com- pares the two great champions of city practice at that time : — " In point of character, Dexter undoubtedly AT THE BAR. 83 Stands next to Parsons at the Boston bar; and in the neighboring counties and States, I suppose, he stands above him. He has a strong, general- izing, capacious mind. He sees his subject in one view ; and in that view, single and alone, he presents it to the contemplation of his heaier. Unable to follow Parsons in minute, technical dis- tinctions, Parsons is unable to follow him in the occasional vaultings and boundings of his mind. Unlike Parsons, too, he cannot be great on little occasions. Unlike him. Parsons cannot reject every little consideration on great occasions. Parsons begins with common maxims, and his course to the particular subject and the particular conclusion brightens and shines more and more clearly to its end. Dexter begins with the particular position which he intends to support ; darkness surrounds him ; no one knows the path by which he arrived at his conclusion. Around him, however, is a circle of light when he opens his mouth. Like a con- flagration seen at a distance, the evening mists may intervene between it and the eye of the observer, although the blaze ascend to the sky and cannot tut be seen." Many years after this minute comparison be- tween the rival giants of the Boston bar at the beginning of the century was written, Mr. Webster told me that he regarded Chief Justice Parsons as one of the greatest men New England had produced, and laid special stress on his eminence as a judge. He said that while the Massachusetts Convention to adopt the Constitution was in session, and a doubt 84 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. rested on the whole question, Governor Hancockj whose influence and opinions had great weight with his friends in the convention, was ill, and did not attend its sessions until near the close of the debates. There were two parties, nearly equal in numbers, and there was some doubt as to which side Hancock would espouse. Near the close of the session, however, he read a speech in favor of adopting the Constitution, and voted in accordance with it. This turned the scale, and a majority sus- tained the Constitution. After Hancock's death, his papers were examined ; and when this speech was found, it turned out to be written, from begin- ning to end, in the handwriting of Chief Justice Parsons. I have in my possession several small memoran- dum books in which Mr. Webster jotted down, from time to time, a desultory diary, various notes, and accounts. One of these contains a curious record of the fees he received during several of the most ac- tive years of his practice. They may be compared with the much larger fees which the first lawyers receive in these later days. I find that, in the year ending September, 1834, his fees amounted to the sum of $13,140; in 1835, to $15,183.74; and in 1836, to $21,793. Here Mr. Webster's accounts stop, he having only jotted down his fees from Sep- tember, 1834, to February, 1837. It must be added that these sums included his Congressional pay. The highest fee recorded during this period was $7,500, " in the New Orleans case ; " the next highest is of $3,000, " in Florida land case, instead of land; ' AT THE BAR. 85 the noxt, of $2,250, in case of the United States Bank ; and there is one of $2,000. The smallest fee recorded is of $20, which I find twice in the account ; and the fees range generally between that sum and $500. Mr. Webster was fond of talking about the im- portant cases in which he had been engaged, and especially of those which enabled him to bring out striking events and curious anecdotes. He alwaya narrated their circumstances, not only with graphic minuteness, but with great spirit and zest. Many a time has he entertained me with these stories of the bar, in which he was most often the chief figure ; and I am able to give some of the most interesting almost in his own language. Few cases have excited more attention than that of John Sanborn against the administrators of Nathan Tufts, of Charlestown. It had been tried once, Jeremiah Mason and Rufus Choate having been the counsel, and the verdict had been set aside. In the second trial Mr. Webster was asso- ciated with Mr. Choate. The character of the par- ties lent added interest to the case, especially in Charlestown, where they lived. Nathan Tufts was a rich, retired tanner, who, having lived to a great age, died childless. His estate was found to be worth nearly half a million. He had a coachman, who was also a man-of-all-work, named John San- born. Sanborn had lived with Mr. Tufts twenty- five years, and everybody in Charlestown was familiar with him as " Mr. Tufts' man." He bought the provisions, drove the coach, settled S(i liEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. the household bills, and was one of those domes- tics w^ho are indispensable. Sanborn received small wages, and, as he had a family, he had several times threatened to leave Mr. Tufts and go West to better his fortunes. Mr. Tufts said he must not leave, that he would see that he was cared for, &c. ; and Sanborn con- tinued with him till his death, and indeed closed his eyes. It was well understood in Charlestown that Sanborn would be remembered in Tufts' will. The old gentleman had no very near relatives, only some nephews and nieces, for whom he cared very little. But, when the will was opened, Sanborn's name did not appear in it at all ; and in a place like Charlestown, where such things are the sub- ject of general conversation and remark, it is not singular that there was a general expression of indignation at the ingratitude of Mr. Tufts, who had left this large estate to remote heirs, and given nothing to the faithful Sanborn. No one joined more heartily in the cry of ingratitude than San- born himself. He went about complaining of Mr. Tufts' conduct. He had spent his life in his ser- vice, fully expecting that his wages were but a part of the consideration. Mr. J. P. Cook was the administrator of the will, and drew it up. He was a careful, painstaking lawyer, and had the will sent up and proved in due form ; and the thing went so far that the heirs discussed among themselves the propriety of giving Sanborn five or six thousand dollars, feeling that more ought to be done for him. Finally, in about a year after Mr. AT THE BAR. 87 Tiifts' death, the story being then a little old, San- born suddenly ceased his complaints, and brought forward a claim in the form of a note of hand from Tufts, to pay him ten thousand dollars one year ufter death, and to deed to him the house and land on which he lived, worth ten thousand dollars more. The administrator refused to recognize these claims, and a suit was brought by Mr. Choate to recover the value of this land from him, and of this ten thousand dollar note. The administrator set up forgery as his defence, relying upon the circumstan- ces of the case, the improbability of the thing, and the denial of Sanborn that he had done any thing to deserve so much. The suit was tried in the Su- preme Court in Boston, and Mr. Choate, junior counsel, employed Mr. Mason to argue it. The jury gave a verdict for Sanborn for the whole amount ; but the verdict was set aside by the full bench as against the law and the evidence. When it came to a new trial, Mr. Webster was emploj-ed by Mr. Choate to take Mr. Mason's place. It was a question involving more than the mere sum of money claimed ; for the same decision that rejected the suit declared Sanborn a forger. There was a good deal of excitement, there being a wide-spread feeling of sympathy for Sanborn on one side, and some suspicion of foul play on the other. Mr. Samuel Hoar managed the suit — with Mr. Cook himself, and Mr. Peabody, an old black-letter, tech- nical lawyer — for the defence. I attended the trial, and heard the evidence and Mr. Webster's argument. Choate, as usual, was nervous. Theie 88 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. was a large mass of evidence on both sides bj? experts, as to the genuineness of the signatures. There was the testimony of bank directors, who were familiar with Mr. Tufts' handwriting, and of other people who had had dealings with him. Some said that the signature to the note was genuine, and others declared it was not ; it was for the jury to decide. The whole case turned upon that. The incidents connected with the trial are quite fresh in my mind ; and they were very interesting from the fact that, pending the examination of witnesses, Mr. Choate was very nervous, and said he did not think Mr. Webster felt much interest in the case. He was afraid he would not argue it well. The evidence was closed on both sides on a Wednesday afternoon, when the court adjourned. The next day was Thanksgiving day, and the arguments were reserved for Friday and Saturday. Mr. Choate said : — " Mr. Webster, where can we meet to-morrow to talk over the case ? " " I am going to Mr. Paige's to dine," he replied, "and we will talk it over there." Mr. Choate hurried up to Mr. Paige's the next day, and began almost at once to talk about the case. " Mr. Choate," said Mr. Webster, " the governor of the Commonwealth has rather required us to abstain from all unnecessary labor to-day, and give our time to other topics of thought and reflection ; and upon the whole I think we had better comply with his request." Mr. Choate was nervous, but AT THE BAR. 89 saw that he could have no consultation about the course of the argument. He went home and said to his wife : " I am sorry I am not going to argue that case myself, because I find that Mr. Webster don't care any thing about it." Choate was full of enthusiasm : his whole mind and soul and strength were given to his client. When the case was resumed, Mr. Hoar made the final argument for the defence, and Mr. Webster was to close for the plaintiff. Mr. Hoar spoke from nine o'clock until one. Mr. Webster said that he would finish the argument with an hour then, and the rest in the afternoon. Judge Shaw remarked that they preferred to sit in the evening. So Mr. Webster began to speak an hour before adjournment. He put his hand to his head, tossed about irregularly, got names wrong, and seemed to wander. There sat Mr. Choate, as ner- vous as if mad dogs were at his heels, twitching about in his seat, and alternately watching Mr. Webster and the jury. The court adjourned at two o'clock. I was then boarding at the Tremont House, as was Mr. Webster and Mr. Hoar. Mr. "Webster did not come to dinner. I met Mr. Hoar as he came in, and said he to me : — " You have been listening to this case pretty attentively : did you think Mr. Webster opened his argument with much spirit, or with his usual ability ? " " I don't think he got on very brilliantly to start with," I replied. " Well," said he, " it 's an awful case. There 'a 90 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. nothing in his side of it ; but then, sir, you can't tell what he will do before he gets through. I never predict till after the game is run to cover." Mr. Webster came into court at three o'clock, a totally different man. He had an air that said, " Now the work is to be done ! " He pulled off his overshoes, threw his coat over the back of a chair, took up his notes, and began the argument of the case in dead earnest. Choate said afterwards that he never heard Webster argue a case better. Nothing ever impressed me more with his power than that argument. There are some points in taking testimony that no other living man could seize and grasp like Mr. Webster. It was necessary for Sanborn's counsel to have a theory about his denials for a w^hole twelvemonth. The theory was that Mr. Tufts, on the last night of his life, when Sanborn was watch- ing with him, broached the subject of his will; and that he said : " Well, John, you have been a faith- ful servant to me, and I ought to reward you for it ; if you will go and write an obligation, to give you the place where you live, and a note of hand for ten thousand dollars, I will sign them, on one condition : that you agree not to present them for a year after my death. 1 want my memory to be undisturbed for a year." John promised that he would keep the matter secret, and received the obligations. Still, it was a pretty hard matter to get over. The question would arise, " How happened San- born to cry, and to say hard things of Mr. Tafts ? " AT THE BAR. 91 Mr. Webster asked all the witnesses who testi- fied to conversations of that sort on the part of Sanborn : " You say Sanborn told you that Mr. Tufts had not left him any thing; that was in answer to a question from you, was it not?" " Yes, sir," would be the reply. When that part of the testimony was reached in Mr. Webster's argument, he dwelt upon the fact that in every instance the witnesses for the defence, who were there to swear to the denials of Sanborn that he had received any thing, admitted that the matter was extorted from him. The question being, " Did Mr. Tufts leave you any thing ? " he was bound to fib a little ; he did not volunteer to say these things, and only said them when he was forced to do so, in order not to violate his pledge to Mr. Tufts. Mr. Hoar rose and begged Mr. Webster's par- don : " There was no such testimony in the case." Mr. Webster replied that he would refer the matter to the judge's notes; and there the judge found a minute of the evidence as stated by Mr. Webster in each one of the twenty cases. Mr. Hoar, in arguing the case, said that it was absurd that a man in his right mind, who was dying, and with the age and experience which Mr. Tufts had, should make so silly a request, — that the note be kept secret a year. " What difference did it make to Mr. Tufts ? It was a lie on the face of it ! What difference was there to a dying man between a minute and a million years ? " The question was put with all Mr. Hoar's powei-, and 92 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. evidently had its effect upon the jury. When Mr. Webster came to reply, he said he was only surprised that such an argument should come from such a source. " ' What difference did it make ? ' is asked, as though there could be no difference. Why, the fact is just the other way. Men who have unimpaired senses and faculties, and are about to leave the world, do things every day which connect them with this world after they are gone. They take an interest in what is to follow their death. The very first professional act of my life," continued Mr. Webster, "when I was a young lawyer in New Hampshire, was to make a will for a strong-minded, sensible farmer, — a neighbor of my father. He was on his death-bed, with all his senses about him. I took down the conditions of his will, — so much for such a child, and such a provision for the widow ; and finally he said, ' I wish to have such a field planted next spring with a certain kind of corn.' I threw down my pen, and asked him if that might not better be left to those who would own it, ' No,' cried he, ' it is my will ! ' What difference did it make to that man what his heirs should sow in that field ? How many people provide for the erection of costly monuments after they are dead ? ' What difference does it make ? ' What difference \Yill it make to you, gentlemen of the jury, to the learned chief justice, to my learned brother on the other side, or to me, whether, after life has fled this mortal tenement, our poor bodies sleep in a beautiful cemetery, with Christian burial, or whiten and AT THE BAR. 93 bleach upon the sands of the seashore ? Certain is it, that not one particle will be out of the reach of the trumpet of the archangel, which will call us to an account for the deeds done in the body, and among those deeds the manner in which we dis- charge our duty in this case." Mr. Webster's method of examining witnesses may be judged from the following scene, which occurred in this case. Among the witnesses was a bank cashier, to whom Mr. Webster said : — " You say you think this is not Mr. Tufts' sig- nature. What means had you of knowing Mr. Tufts' signature ? " " I was cashier of the bank of which he was president, and used to see his signature in all forms; and very often to obligations and notes and bills." " And you think that is not his signature ? Please to point out, if you will, where there is a discrepancy." " I do not know as I can tell." " But a sensible man can tell why he thinks one thing is not like another." "Well [examining the note], in the n the top used to be closed." " Gentlemen of the jury, you hear : the top was closed. Go on." " The s at the end of his name was usually kept above the horizontal line ; this is below." " Well ; any other ? " " Not any other." Mr. Webster then took one of the forty genume 94 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. Bignatures which were in court, and, stating to the jury that it was admitted to be genuine, showed them that the very things the witness had testified Mr. Tufts never did, were to be found in this signa- ture, and in nearly every instance. The witness looked chapfallen, and took his seat ; and nearly all the witnesses were floored in the same way. At last they came to William P. Win- chester. He sat opposite to me, and looked at Mr. Webster with an air which said, " You won't get any such answers out of me." He took the stand, and testified that he did not think the signature genuine. " Why ? " asked Mr. Webster. " I can't tell," was the reply. " But, Colonel Winchester, an intelligent man can give a reason for his opinion. Pray, don't give such a statement as that without offering a reason for it." •' I can't give a reason ; but if you will allow me to make an illustration, I will do so." " Certainly." " Suppose," said Mr. Winchester, " some distin- guished man at home or abroad should be seen walking on 'Change ; suppose you were there at high 'Change ; it would be very natural to point out Daniel Webster, and say, ' There goes the de- fender of the Constitution.' Everybody would mark him, and nobody could mistake his identity. They woiUd always know him afterwards. But if, in the afternoon, some man brought me a head and two legs and two arms on a platter, and asked me AT THE BAR. 95 to identify them separately as belonging to Daniel Webster, I could not swear to them. In the same way, there is something about this signature that does not look genuine ; but I could not swear to the particulars." Mr. Webster smiled at this reply, and told the witness that he might be excused. The following incident of the Sanborn suit may be related as an instance of Mr. Webster's keen- ness and power of repartee. Augustus Peabody, one of the opposing counsel, was very familiar with the "books," and no case could be cited which he could not find at once. He w^as a sort of walking dictionary of law. Mr. Webster was arguing to the jury, and cited some English case, when Mr. Peabody interrupted him, and asked where the case was to be found reported. Mr. Webster went straight on, paying no attention to the interrup- tion, and Mr. Hoar and Mr. Peabody hiuTiedly consulted together. Then Mr. Peabody rose and claimed the protection of the court. He said that Mr. Webster was citing authorities to sustain his argument, and they wished to know where they were to be found, so that they could judge for themselves as to the pertinency of the citation. Judge Shaw remarked that counsel had a right to know where the cases were to be found, and that the court itself would like to know\ Mr. Web«ter leaned against the rail, resting on his elbow, and looking at the court, said : — " It is not very good manners to interrupt me in the midst of a sentence addressed to the jury. It is a practice in which I never indulge. I always 96 REMINISCENCES OF D^VNIEL WEBSTER. let counsel have their say, and if I can answer them, I do, as well as I can. This interrupting I don't like : it is rather a habit of my learned friend on the other side, and is quite annoying. He has appealed to me to know where the case that I have cited can be found reported, somewhat as if I had quoted a case that Avas fictitious. What I wish to say in answer to that is, that the case to which I referred was so and so [giving the names, &c.], and that it occurred in the third year of Lord Eldon in Chancery. In what particular volume of reports by Lord Eldon, on what particular page, and how many lines from the top of the page, I don't know. I never trouble myself with these little matters. Peabody has nothing else to do, and he can hunt it up at his leisure ! " In this Sanborn case, there was a witness whose testimony went quite strongly against Mr. WeJj- ster's side. He was asked about conversations that he had had with Mr. Webster's client, — how many times Sanborn had told him that Mr. Tufts had left him nothing ? The witness very naively and honestly replied, — " I should think a hundred times." Only a year had elapsed, and the extravagance of the statement made the court and jury laugh Mr. Hoar, whose witness he was, saw at once that the force of the testimony was broken by the exag- geration, and said he supposed the witness meant that Sanborn had told him this a good many times. " Think again, Mr. Skilton," said he j " how many times was it ? " AT THE BAK. 97 i( Well,'' was the reply, " it might not have been more than sixty or seventy times." Upon being questioned again, he thought there might not be more than fifty times. When Mr. Webster addressed the jury on this point, he said : " Now I come to the testimony of Mr. Skilton ; and I can't better illustrate it than b}' telling a snake story that I once heard told by a man who was in the habit of drawing a pretty long bow. If he went out hunting or shooting, he always heard or saw something very wonderful. On one occasion he reported that he had seen a hundred black snakes, all in a row, and all twenty feet long. ' Why,' said a bystander, ' I don't be- lieve you ever saw one hundred black snakes in the world.' ' Well,' replied he, ' there were sev- enty-five.' ' I don't believe there were seventy- five.' ' Well, there were fifty, at any rate.' ' I don't believe there were fifty.' ' Well, there were forty.' And he finally got down to two, when he planted his foot firmly on the ground, and said : ' I declare to you that I won't take off another snake ; I'll give up the story first ! ' So this wit- ness began at a hundred, and got down to seventy- five and fifty ; but all my learned brother's efforts could not get him below fifty ; he ' had rather give up the story.' " Mr. Webster once told me some interesting facts about the trial of the Kennisons at Newburyport, for the Goodrich robbery. This was a case in which a drover robbed himself in such a manner as to induce the belief that it was done by the 98 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. Kennisons, who kept the toll-gate at Newburyport Bridge. He fired a pistol at his own hand, strewed gold along the road and in the cellar of the Kenni- sons, accused them of robbing him, and they were arrested. The object of this was to get rid of pay- ing his debts. He made the excuse that he had been robbed, and could not. The case excited a great deal of interest, for the Kennisons bore a respectable name, and the circumstantial evidence against them was very strong. Most people did not believe that they were guilty, and their friends and neighbors prepared to assist them in their de- fence. I will give the rest of the story in Mr. Webster's own words : — " I had been at Washington during a long ses- sion, and was on my return home. At Providence I got into the stage for Boston ; and, after a while, naturally fell into conversation with the one or two persons besides myself that it contained. I asked what the news was, &c., and found one of my new acquaintances to be Mr. Perkins, of New- buryport, — a very intelligent, pleasant man. From one topic of conversation to another, we came to speak of this robbery. Mr. Perkins said there was a great deal of excitement in Essex County, and, indeed, even in Boston, at so daring a highway robbery ; and there was much division of opinion about the affair. 1 recollected to have seen something about it in the papers, but had retained nothing, and now took no interest in the Bubject until Mr. Perkins said that his theory of the affair was that the man robbed himself. AT THE BAR. 99 " ' Robbed himself ! ' said I. ' What could be his motive ? ' " ' To avoid the payment of money.' " ' What makes you think he shot himself ? ' 1 asked. " ' The wound was in the inside of the left hand,' replied Mr. Perkins, ' on the inside ends of the fin- gers. He was fired at, and the ends of his fingers were torn off. Well, suppose you were to be as- saulted, would you be very likely to hold your hand open outwards ? The bullet, if it hit your hand, would hit the back of it. Now, if a man were going to fire at himself, he would shoot himself just where this man is wounded, and would hurt himself as little as possible.' " I became interested in the matter, and we talked of it till we got nearly home. I reached my house in Summer Street, tired and jaded. In the midst of my family the thought of every thing else went out of my head ; but the next morning, after a pretty long night's rest, I got up refreshed to rather a late breakfast. The bell rang, and the servant came to the breakfast-room to say that some gentlemen, who had already called two or three times to see me, were in the hbrary. ' Oh yes,' said my wife, ' they are two gentlemen from Newburyport, who are anxious to get you to go there, and defend some men for highway rob- bery. They seem to be very respectable men, and say that there has been a purse made up to give them good counsel. The court has also granted a delay, to give them a chance to con- 100 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. suit you.' The case related to me by Mr. Perkins instantly crossed my mind ; but I said : — " ' I am tired, and shall not go to Newburyport to try any case.' " ' But,' said she, ' these men are very earnest, and you will have to see them yourself.' " I finished my breakfast, and then went down into the library to see them. They were very anxious that I should go, and said they were ready to pay any fee I demanded. I replied that the fee was of no consequence, and that the reason why I would not go was that I had just returned from Washington, and really needed repose. *' ' Besides,' I said, ' it isn't necessary that I should go ; there are other lawyers who can try it better than I. There is Judge Prescott.' " They rephed that Judge Prescott was engaged on the other side, and that that was one of the reasons why they wanted me. ' " ' Well,' I said, ' I can't go ; it is out of the question. You must get somebody else.' " They looked very despondent, as much as to say, ' We are very sorry, but can't help it.' Their expression was one that rather overcame me, and I began to relent. I asked them when the trial was to come off. They replied, it would be called in a day or two. And, after a few more Avords, 1 told them I would go ; and I did go. " The evidence was strongly circumstantial, for Goodrich would not swear that Kennison was the man who assaulted and robbed him ; but he said it was a man that looked like him. Taking all AT THE BAR. 101 the circumstances together, — the gold which was found and identified, the tracks, and so on, — the evidence was pretty strong against the accused. I had in my mind all the while what Perkins had said to me about shooting the inside of the hand ; and, after the Government had examined Goodrich for three hours, and made him tell a pretty straight story, they said they were through, and gave him to me to cross-examine. Then, for the first time in the history of the case, the line of defence developed itself in the first question which was asked. I never saw a man's color come and go so quickly, as when I asked him to explain how it was that he was wounded on the inside of his hand. He faltered, and showed the most unmistakable si^i-ns of a;uilt. I made him appear about as mean as any man ever did on the witness stand. The Kennisons were triumphantly acquitted, and Goodrich fled. Every one saw at once that he had perpetrated this robbery himself. But he had a good many friends, and though an indictment was found against him, he was allowed to leave this part of the country. " Some ten years afterwards," continued Mr. Webster, " I was travelling in Western New York with Mrs. Webster, and came, on a Saturday night, to a pleasant village near Geneva. We found a nice country hotel, selected rooms there, and made ourselves comfortable. It was a very warm even- ing, and my wife ordered some cold drink, — a pitcher of iced lemonade, I think. The barkeeper brought it into the room and put it on the table ; 102 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. but as it was a little dark, I took no special notice of him. After he had gone out, Mrs. Webster said : ' Did you notice how agitated that person was ? ' I said, ' No, I did not notice him at all. * Well,' continued she, ' he eyed you very narrowly, and seemed to be very much frightened.' " I thought no more of it then ; but the next morning I was in the bar-room, and noticed that the man was very shy. As I approached, he would slip out and call some one else to attend me. I said to myself, ' What makes that man shun nje ? Who and what is he ? ' I pursued the subject in my mind, but could not make out who the nian was. The next day I called for my bill. As he made it out, he kept his back to me as much as possible, but finally handed it to me receiptod. It was not until I got into the carriage and drove off that I looked at the signature. I discov- ered, half obscured in the great inky border of the printed form, the name of Goodrich. Thim the whole thing came to me at once. This m.in had escaped from the indignant eye of the world ; had gone up there and engaged in this humble business of keeping a bar at a country hotel, and doubtless thought himself out of reach of old asso- ciations. No wonder that my presence agitated him so strongly." In the spring of 1852, — the year he died, — Mr. Webster was asked to argue the great india- rubber case, which was tried before the United States Court at Trenton, N. J. ; that of Goodyear V. Day. Day's counsel was Choate ; and as Good- AT THE BAR. 103 year felt the importance of the suit to him, the legal fees which he should pay seemed a small matter. Mr. Webster was then Secretary of State, and no man occupying such a place had ever before tnken a fee and gone into court. He was over- worked and in feeble health. The labors of the St> me. Nothing in the course of the events which de- 216 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. feated Mr. "Webster at Baltimore, in 1852, wounded him more than what Mr. Clay said to some of the delegates who were on their way to attend the convention. Mr. Clay's remarks were repeated to Mr. Webster, and by him in turn to me. At that time Mr. Clay was within three weeks of his death, lingering as it were in the last hours of his exist- ence. The delegates called to pay their respects to him, and he admitted some of them to his presence. They naturally asked his opinion as to whom it was best to support at Baltimore. He said : " Fill- more, by all means." " But," said they, " some advocate Scott ; and others, Webster." " General Scott is a very good man," Clay re- plied ; " he is a political friend of mine, and a good soldier. I have a great respect for him. Mr. Webster is of course an eminent man, and all that ; but neither of these men has ever been tried in the office. Mr. Fillmore has: why not go for him?" Mr. Webster said that scarcely any thing wounded Lim more than this suggestion of Mr. Clay, that Mr. Fillmore should be preferred because he had been tried and found competent, and that he (Webster) was not fit to be President, simply because he never had been tried in that office ! " The thing is too absurd," said he, " for anybody to believe that it was sincere. I think my treatment of Mr. Clay did not justify such a comment, at such a time, upon my qualifications for the Presidency. It wounded me very much." MK. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 217 I think Mr. Webster appreciated all Mr. Clay's good qualities. He said that, with a great deal of native talent, and a little smattering of law, — less than that possessed by mere oftice boys in some large offices, — Mr. Clay went into the wil- derness of Kentucky ; and with a good address, natural eloquence, perseverance, boldness, and all those qualities that are admired by a new people, he became an influential man. In Kentucky, while there was no lack of talent in the legal profession, neither the judiciary nor the bar could be called learned. In that State, therefore, Mr. Clay be- came almost supreme as an advocate. In the class of trials and suits that would naturally come before the courts of such a district, where disputes and brawls of all sorts were constantly arising, the man who employed Mr. Clay was usually the successful party. He had great power among all classes of the people. He early went into public life, of course without having had much opportunity to study, and thus make up for the deficiencies of his early training. Going to Washington with a brill- iant reputation, he was naturally employed in a great many cases in the Supreme Court. He was not, however, adapted by training or education to the class of cases that were tried before that tribu- nal. There were no juries there; it was all dry law, all logic. " In the course of my professional life," said Mr. Webster, "it has happened many times that I found myself retained in the same cause with Mr. Clay. He was my senior by several years, in the 218 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. profession and in age. That fact gave him the right to speak first in all such cases. Often, before beginning my argument, I have had to labor hard to do away with the effect and impression of his. Some of the most laborious acts of my professional life have consisted in getting matters back to the starting point, after Clay had spoken. The fact is, he was no lawyer. He was a statesman, a politi- cian, an orator; but no reasoner." Mr. Webster talked with me about Mr. Clay's speech on the Compromise Measures, and declared that it was a prodigy. He said that when Mr. Clay spoke, the mercury in the Senate chamber was at 100°. " He was incapable," added Mr. Webster, " of a long, protracted, sustained physi- cal effort; and I could hardly conceive how it was possible for him to endure the labor necessary to speak as he did. He spoke nearly three hours, to a densely crowded Senate. I never listened to him with so much admiration and wonder as on that occasion. He is a very great man ; there is no mistake about that ; he is a wonderful man." Sometime during the year 1844, when Mr. Clay was a candidate for the Presidency, the news-boj^s were very busy hawking his Life about the streets of New York. One day, as Mr. Webster was enter- ing his carriage, in that city, a boy called out to him with great earnestness : " Life of Clay, Life of Clay, sir ! Will you take the Life of Clay ? " " Take Mr. Clay's life ? Not for the world ! " re- plied Mr. Webster. The personal relations between Mr. Webster and MK. WKBSTER AND HIS CONTKMPOHAKIICS. 210 Mr. Calhoun were of (he pleasantest and friendH- est character. Thev had a hitih mutual esteem for each other, and this feeling existed down to the time of Mr. Callioun's death. Mr. Webster had the most exalted opinion of the great South Caro- linian's genius. I once asked him whom he con- sidered the greatest man he had met in the Senate, or with whom he had come in contact in public life. He replied without hesitation, "John C. Calhoun." lie said of him that he was " long- headed, a man of extraordinary power, — much the ablest man in the Senate." When Mr. Webster was about to deliver his 7th of March speech, he invited me to come on to Washington to hear it. lie intended to make it a great effort, the crowning address of his later public life ; and, as he knew beforehand that his action and motives would be misconstrued, and that the speech would bring down upon him con- demnation from many quarters, he was resolved that he would make use of all his powers to ren- der it worthy of his really high motives and his fame. Early on the morning of the 7th, 1 was sitting with him in his house, when the sergeant- at-arms of the Senate came in. lie told Mr. Web- ster that already not only the Senate chamber itself but all the approaches to it were crowded by an eager multitude. A great speech from Mr. Web- ster was a national event. Mr. Webster looked at me and, in a sad voice, spoke of this as being one of the last times that he should ever address listen- intc masses on the floor of thf. Senate, and of tliy 220 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. rapidly approaching close of his public life. Re* covering his spirits again in a moment, he turned to the sergeant-at-arms, and said : — " However crowded the Senate chamber is, I want you to be sure and save two good seats ; one for Mrs. Webster, and the other for my old friend Harvey here, who has come all the way from Bos- ton to hear my speech." The sergeant-at-arms promised that he would do so. On going to the Senate chamber at the proper time, I found an excellent seat reserved for me, near and a little in front of the spot where Mr. Webster would stand when he made his speech. While he was speaking, an affecting incident oc- curred, which illustrated the warmth of feeling between Mr. Calhoun and himself. It appeared that, several days before, Mr. Webster had paid a visit to Mr. Calhoun in his sick room at the old Capitol building. The venerable South Carolina Senator was very ill, and it was thought that he would never be able to appear in his seat again ; the conversation turning upon the speech that Mr. Webster was about to make, the sick statesman expressed an earnest wish to hear it. Mr. Webster replied that he hoped he would be able to get to the Senate, as he himself was anxious that Mr. Calhoun should be present. Mr. Calhoun shook his head sadly, and said that he feared he was on his death-bed ; and Mr. Webster parted from him, fully impressed with the belief that the venerable .nvalid must soon pass away. Mr. Webster had not been speaking long, on MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 221 this occasion, when I saw a tall, gaunt figure, WTapped in a long hlack cloak, with deep, cavern- ous bhick e^^es and a thick mass of snow-white hair brushed back from the large brow and falling to the shoulders, advance with slow and feeble steps through the lobby behind the Vice-president's chair, and then, aided by one of the Senators, approach and sink into a chair on the opposite side of the chamber. I looked at Mr. Webster, and observed that as he spoke his face was turned the other way, so that he had not seen the almost ghostly figure come in. He went on speaking in his deep and sonorous tones ; and at last came to a passage wherein he alluded to something Mr. Calhoun had once said in debate, as "the utterance of the distinguished and venerable Senator from South Carolina, who, I deeply regret, is prevented by serious illness from being in his seat to-day." At this I glanced towards the tall, gaunt figure across the chamber. He was moving restlessly in his chair ; his head and body were bent eagerly for- ward, and he made an effort as if trying to rise and interrupt the orator. But the etlort seemed to be too much for him, for he sank back in his chair, evidently exhausted. The noble current of Websterian eloquence flowed majestically on, all unconscious of the intended interruption. Pres- ently the speaker once more had occasion to refer to some statement of Mr. Calhoun ; and again he alluded to him as " the eminent Senator from South Carolina, whom we all regret so much to miss, from such a cause, from his seat to-day." 222 REMINISCENCES OF DAlS'IEL WEBSTER. The figure again grew restless ; the hands ner- vously grasped both arms of his chair ; the black eyes glared and shone in their eagerness ; and now, half rising from his seat, and unable any longer to bear the thought that Mr. Webster should remain unconscious of his presence, he exclaimed, in a feeble and hollow voice, which yet was heard throughout the chamber : — "■ The Senator from South Carolina is in his seat ! " Mr. Webster turned towards him with some- thing like a start, and when he saw that his friend had actually risen from the bed of death, and had indeed dared death itself to creep to the Capi- tol and hear his speech, he for a moment betrayed visible signs of deep emotion. Then, acknowledg- ing this touching compliment by a bow and a smile of profound satisfaction, he went on with his speech. A few days more, and Calhoun lay dead, in state, within those very walls. A year or two before Mr. Webster's death, he related to me an incident which illustrated the great change that came over Mr. Benton at one period of his life. Mr. Benton carried his political and party prejudices to the extreme. " We had had," said Mr. Webster, " a great many political controversies; we were hardly on bowing terms. For many years we had been mem- bers of the sjime body, and passed in and out at the same door without even bowing to each other, and ^\dthout the slightest mutual recognition ; and MK. WKHSTEU AND HIS COXT EMI'OIJ AIMKS. 223 we never had any intercourse except such as was official, and where it couhl not be avoided. There were no social relations whatever between us. " At the time of the terrible gun explosion on board the ' Princeton,' during Mr. Tyler's adniinis- tmtion, Mr. Benton was on board ; and he related to me with tears this incident. lie said he was stand ing near the gun, in the very best position to see the experiment. The deck of the steamer was crowded ; and, with the scramble for places to witness the discharge of the gun, his position perhaps was the most favorable on the deck. Suddenly he felt a hand laid upon his shoulder, and turned ; some one wished to speak to him, and he was elbowed out of his place and another person took it, very much to his annoyance. The person who took his place was ex-Governor Gilmer, of Virginia, then Secre- tary of the Navy. Just at that instant the gun was fired, and the explosion took place. Governor Gilmer was killed instantly. Mr. Upshur, then Sec- retary of State, was also killed, as was one other man of considerable prominence. Colonel Benton, in relating this circumstance, said : ' It seemed to me, Mr. Webster, as if that touch on my shoulder was the hand of the Almighty stretched down there, drawing me away from what otherwise would have been instantaneous death. I was merely prostrated on the deck, and recovered in a very short time. That one circumstance has changed the whole cur- rent of my thoughts ami life. I feel that 1 am a different man, and I want in the first place to be at peace with all those with whom I have been so 224 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTET8. sharply at variance. And so I have come to you. Let us bury the hatchet, Mr. Webster.' ' Nothing/ repHed I, ' could be more in accordance with my OAvn feelings.' We shook hands and agreed to let the past be past ; and from that time our intercourse was pleasant and cordial. After this time, there was no person in the Senate of the United States of whom I would have asked a favor, any reason- able and proper thing, with more assurance of obtaining it, than of Mr. Benton." In the year 1847, just after the discovery of gold in California, and after Colonel Fremont had wrested the territory from Mexican rule, a great deal was said about the glory of his achievements. There was a great rush of settlers to the newly- acquired territory, and universal excitement about it. Colonel Benton was in "high feather" at the success of his son-in-law, Colonel Fremont, and was full of the topic, talking of nothing else. In almost every debate in the Senate he alluded to it. Col- onel Fremont's name was in everybody's mouth, and his wonderful deeds were the subject of gen- eral laudation. Everybody who went to California sought Benton to get letters to Fremont, who was a sort of viceroy out there. One day after dinner, as Mr. Webster was seated in his library, the servant announced " Mr. Wilson, of St. Louis ; " and John Wilson came into the library. Mr. Webster at once rose and greeted him. Narrating the visit to me he said : — '• Mr. Wilson was a gentleman whom I had known more or less for a quarter of a century ; MR. WKBSTEU AND HIS CONTLMPORAIilES. 22o a lawyer of pretty extensive practice and Avitli a good deal of talent ; a man of very violent preju- dices and temper, who had spent most of his public life, after he reached manhood, in violent opposi- tion to Colonel Benton. It was not so much an op- position to Colonel Benton's democracy as it was a personal feud, as bitter and malignant as any that ever existed between two men. It was notorious in St. Louis that, when Colonel Benton went on the stump, John Wilson would always be there to meet him, and to abuse him in the most virulent terms ; and that Mr. Benton would return the fire. I had not seen AVilson for a good many years, and had only met him occasionally in court. He came to me now, a broken man, prematurely old, with a wrecked fortune ; and, after some conversation, he said : — " ' I am going to emigrate to Cahfornia in my old age, Mr. Webster. I am poor ; I have a family ; and, although it matters but little to me for the short time that remains to me, if I am poor, 3'et there are those who are dear to me, whose condi- tion I might improve by going to a new country and trying to mend my fortunes. My object in calling on you is to trouble you for a letter to some one in California ; merely to say that you know me to be a respectable person, worthy of confidence.' " After expressing my regret that he should feel obliged to emigrate to such a distance, — for then it looked hke a formidable undertaking to go to Cali- fornia, — I asked him if he was fully determined. " ' Yes,' said he, '' I have made up my mind.' 226 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTEll. "Then I set about thinking what I could do for him. I saw no way to give him assistance. I had no particular influence with the Government at that time ; and finally I said : — '"I am sorry, Mr. Wilson, to say that, so far as I am aware, there is not a human being in Cali- fornia that I know. If I were to undertake to give a letter to any one in California, I should not know to whom to address it.' " ' That makes no difference,' said he : ' every- body knows you, and a certificate that you know me will be the most valuable testimonial I could have.' " ' I will write one with great pleasure, although you probably overrate the influence of my name in California. I want to do you a service. I want to give you something that will be of benefit to you. Let me see, Mr. Wilson. Colonel Benton almost owns California ; and he could give you a letter to Fremont and others that would be of first- rate service to you.' " He looked me in the face, half astonished and half inquiringly, as much as to say : ' Can it be possible that you are ignorant of the relations be- tween Colonel Benton and myself ? ' " I said : ' I understand what you mean ; I am perfectly well aware of the past difficulties between you and Mr. Benton, and the bitter personal hos- tility that has existed. But I want to say to you, that a great change has come over Colonel Benton since you knew him. His feelings and sentiments are softened. We are all getting older. Our fiery hot blood is getting cooled and changed. It is MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMrOIlAKIES. 227 hardly worth while for men, when they are getting up pretty near the maximum of human life, to in- dulge in these feehngs of enmity and ill-will. It is a thing that we ought to rid ourselves of. Col- onel Benton and I have been engaged in a war of words, as you and he have ; and, up to two or three years ago, we went out of the same door for years without so much as saying ' Good-morning * to one another. Now, I do not know a man in the Senate to whom I would go with more certainty of having a favor granted than to Colonel Benton. He feels that age is coming upon him, and he is reconciled to many of his bitterest opponents. " ' Is thy servant a dog,' replied Wilson, ' that he should do this thing ? I would not have a let- ter from him, I would not speak to him, I would not be beholden to him for a favor, — not to save the life of every member of my family ! No, sir ! The thought of it makes me shudder. I feel indig- nant at the mention of it. / take a letter from Mr. Benton ? I — ' " ' Stop, stop ! ' said I ; * that is the old man speak- ing in you. That is not the spirit in which to in- dulge. I know how you feel.' And while he was raving and protesting and declaring, by all the saints in the calendar, his purpose to accept no favor from Colonel Benton, I turned round to my desk, and addressed a note to Benton, something like this : Dear Sir, — I am well aware of the disputes, personal and political, which have taken place between yourself and the bearer of this note, Mr. John Wilson. But the old gen- tleman is now poor, and is going to California, and needs a 228 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. letter of recommendation. I know nobody in California to whom I could address a letter that would be of any service to him. You know everybody, and a letter from you would do him a great deal of good. I have assured Mr. Wilson that it will give you more pleasure to forget what has passed between you and him, and to give him a letter that will do him good, than it will hitn to receive it. I am going to per- suade him to carry you this note, and I know you will be glad to see him. " Wilson got through protesting, and I read him the note. Then I said : — " ' I want you to carry it to Benton.' " ' I won't ! ' he repHed. " I coaxed and scolded and reasoned, and brought every consideration, — death, eternity, and every thing else, — to bear ; but it seemed to be of no use. Said I : — " ' Wilson, you will regret it.' " After a while he got a little softened, and some tears flowed ; and at last I made him promise, rather reluctantly, that he would deliver the note at Colonel Benton's door, if he did not do any more. He told me afterwards that it was the bit- terest pill he ever swallowed. Colonel Benton's house was not far from mine. Wilson took the note, and, as he afterwards told me, went up with trembling hands, put the note, with his own card, into the hand of the girl who came to the door, and ran away to his lodgings. He had been scarcely half an hour in his room, trembling to think what he had done, when a note came from Colonel Ben- ton, saying he had received the card and note, and that Mrs. Benton and himself would have much MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 229 pleasure in receiving Mr. Wilson at Jreakfast, at nine o'clock, the next morning. Tliej would wait breakfast for him, and no answer T''as expected ! " ^ The idea ! ' said he to himself, ' that I am going to breakfast with Tom Benton ! John Wil- son ! what will people say ; and what shall I say ? The thing is not to be thought of. And yet I must. I have delivered the note, and sent my card ; if I don't go now, it will be rude. I wish I had not taken it. It doesn't seem to me as if I could go and sit there at that table.' ' I lay awake,' said he afterwards, to me, ^ that night, thinking of it ; and in the morning I felt as a man might feel who had had sentence of death passed upon him, and was called by the turnkey to get up for his last breakfast. I rose, however, made my toilet, and, after hesitating a great deal, went to Colonel Ben- ton's house. My hands trembled as I rang the bell. Instead of the servant, the colonel himself came to the door. He took me cordially by both hands, and said : " Wilson, I am delighted to see you ; this is the happiest meeting I have had for twenty years. Give me your hand. Webster has done the kindest thing he ever did in his life." Leading me directly to the dining-room, he presented me to Mrs. Benton, and then we sat down to break- fast. After inquiring kindly about my family, he said : " You and I, Wilson, have been quarrelling on the stump for twenty-five years. We have been calling each other hard names, but really with no want of mutual respect and confidence. It has been a mere foolish political fight, and let's 230 reminiscencp:s of daniel webster. wipe it out of mind. Every thing that I have said about you I ask your pardon for." We both cried a httle, and I asked his pardon, and we were good friends. We talked over old matters, and spent the morning till twelve o'clock in pleasant conver- sation. Nothing was said of the letter, until just as I was about departing. He turned to his desk, and said : " I have prepared some letters for you to my son-in-law and other friends in California j " and he handed out 7iine sheets of foolscap. " ' It was not a letter, but a ukase ; a command to " every person to whom these presents shall come, greeting ; " it was to the effect that whoever re- ceived them must give special attention to the wants of his particular friend. Colonel John Wilson, of Saint Louis. Every thing was to give w^ay to that. He put them into my hands, and I thanked him, and left.'" Mr. Webster continued : " Colonel Benton after- wards came to me, and said : ' Webster, that was the kindest thing you ever did. God bless you for sending John Wilson to me ! That is one trouble- some thing off my mind. That was kind, Webster., Let us get these things off our minds as fast as we can ; we have not much longer to stay ; we have got pretty near the end ; we want to go into the presence of our Maker with as little of enmity in our hearts as possible.' " I told him how much pleasure it gave me to reconcile persons who had been alienated. It was better than a great senatorial triumph. ' And now,' I added, ' I have one other thing in my heart, and MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 231 I am determined to bring it to pass. We have talked these matters over, — of how little conse- quence are all these personal bickerings and strifes to a man when he gets near the end of life. What are all these honors and contests to a man when the interests of the future life begin to magnify in his eyes, and those of this life to dwindle away? Now, colonel, look at me. You have been a great many years in the United States Senate, and your relations to Mr. Calhoun are not friendly. I want to reconcile you and Mr. Calhoun, and then I shall be content ! ' " ' Webster,' he replied, curtly, ^ don't you men- tion that to me ! Anybody else — anybody ; you may tell me to go and ask the pardon of a negro in the jail, and I will go and do it. But I won't be reconciled to Calhoun, — I won't, sir ! Calhoun is a humbug. I won't have any thing to do with him, — I won't, sir ! My mind is made up. Any- body else, but not Calhoun. He is a humbug, and I won't do it, sir ! ' " Mr. Webster said that when Mr. Calhoun's hfe- less body was brought into the Senate, the com- mittee of arrangements who had charge of such matters of course selected from the contemporaries of Mr. Calhoun such gentlemen as they thought would esteem it a privilege to speak. "I never in my life," said Mr. Webster, "per- formed a more pleasing duty at a service of that kind, — solemn and touching ; for I had very great respect for Mr. Calhoun. He was a man of great worth, most sincere, upright, — and with all the 232 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. qualities, not only of a very great man, but of a very estimable one." The committee invited Colonel Benton to speak, not with the expectation that he would consent to do so, but because they thought it was due to his age that he should have an opportunity at such an hour, when every thing should be banished from the heart but kindness, to say a word. But he declined without comment. Mr. Webster said : " His seat was directly opposite mine, and while I was making the few remarks which the state of my feelings would allow, I looked across, and saw that Benton had his back turned to the Senate, and was twirling his spectacles inattentively. So strong was the feeling of dislike which he entertained for Mr. Calhoun." Mr. Benton had all sorts of knowledge, and seemed to have acquired more political facts than any man Mr. Webster had ever met ; even more than John Quincy Adams. He had a wonderful memory, and read every thing ; and gave his whole time and attention to politics, never prac- tising his profession. During the discussions on the Oregon bill, Mr. Benton made a speech, as did many other members ; and near the close of the debate Mr. Webster was about to speak, and wanted to get a book, of which he had an indis- tinct recollection, for some geographical fact to illustrate a point in his remarks. It was something that he had seen a great many years before in a book which was now probably out of print. He only knew the name of its author, but he set to MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CGNTEMPORARIES. 233 work to find it. He asked Peter Force, who had collected a great political library at Washington ; but Mr. Force could not find it. He then got the librarian of Congress to hunt for it ; but he, also, had no success. Mr. Webster was about giving it up in despair, when it occurred to him to speak to Benton, He went to him, and said : — " You know every thing, colonel, and where every thing is. Have you any recollection or knowledge of such a geography, such a book, or such an author ? " The colonel stopped a moment to think, and then replied : — " I know what you want ; I'll see if I can find it." An hour afterwards, Mr. Webster, having left the Senate, returned to his seat ; and, as he said to me, " There, lying on my desk, was an immense book, with a leaf turned down to the place that I wanted to find, although I had not said a word as to the particular part of the book I wanted to con- sult. Without any suggestion of mine, Mr. Benton had guessed at what I wanted, and turned down the leaf. I looked up from my desk to his, and there he was, bowing to me, as if to say, ' That's it.' I do not suppose there was another man who could have found that book for me." Of Silas Wright, Mr. Webster had a very poor opinion. " He is the most over-rated man," said he, " that I have ever met. He is oracular, wise-looking, taciturn, and cunning as a fox. He was the most inferior man in debate that sat in the Senate. You 234 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. have seen boys at school who would contrive in some way to skip the hard spelling. He always skipped the hard places. His arguments, besides being weak and fallacious, were always evasive. He would try to make the crowd think he had answered, when he had not touched the point. In my judgment he was a very small man, — a mere politician, and no statesman." Of James Buchanan he said : — " Buchanan is a good politician, but he is no statesman. He merely looks at things as they affect the party." Mr. Webster always cherished a very profound regard and love for Rufus Choate. No man lived for whom he had more affection. This regard was heartily reciprocated. Mr. Choate could always be relied upon to serve Mr. Webster's interests, and his friendship and advocacy of Mr. Webster were valuable, because there were few other such men as he. Mr. Webster used often to send to Mr. Choate for advice ; and I was frequently the bearer of messages requesting Mr. Choate's counsel upon matters more particularly connected with Mr. Webster's political prospects and plans. Their con- fidence in this respect was complete. Mr. Web- ster used to talk of Choate a great deal ; and, after he had been away, on his return one of his first inquiries would be, "How is Choate?" When I visited him at Washington, on one occasion, I recol- lect Choate was the first person he inquired about. We were driving out one afternoon, and he began talking about Choate. MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. LJ35 I said : " There are many persons in the profes- sion who envy and slander him, and attempt to make light of and to ridicule his elocution." " When I was a young man," responded Mr. Webster, " and first entered the law, my style oi oratory was as round and florid as Choate's. I do not think it is the best. It is not according to my taste. But then there is no man in the world beside Choate who could succeed with that style. It is his own. It is peculiar to him. It is as nat- ural to him as any constitutional trait about him. Nobody can imitate him. He imitates nobody. And his style is most effective. I have had occa- sion to know, and I can say to those who criticise him what they themselves know, that, had they the power to use his style of eloquence, they would not be long in forgetting its bad taste, and would soon be using it for the benefit of their clients. It is a great mistake to suppose that Mr. Choate, in that flowery elocution, does not keep his logic all right. Amid all that pile of flowers there is a strong, firm chain of logic. He never loses sight of that. He never forgets that, or is carried away from it. He is very keen and very effective." When Judge Woodbury died, in 1851, and there was therefore a vacancy in the United States Su- preme Court, something was said about conferring the appointment on Mr. Choate, and Mr. Webster said : — " Mr. Choate will have the offer of this, but I do not know as he will take it. The offer is due to him as the first lawyer in New England. I shaU make him the offer." 236 liEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. And he did ; but Mr. Choate declined to take it. Mr. Webster related to me an interesting inci- dent relative to his first introduction to Senator Preston, of South Carolina. Mr. Preston was a grandson of Patrick Henry, and was said to be, in some respects, the most eloquent man in the United States Senate ; he certainly was a brilliant man and a great declaimer. In nullificatioa times, Mr. Preston was a nullifier, a disciple of Calhoun. After the great debate on Footers resolutions between Hayne and Webster, Preston changed his views, and became a Unionist. Party politics were divided in South Carolina differently from what they were in any other part of the country. There were the nullifiers, or States' -rights party, and the Demo- crats. There was no Whig party there. Preston belonged to the States'-rights or Calhoun party. That party embraced the talent and nearly all the brilHant men in South Carolina, including Gover- nors Hayne and McDuffie. After the great debate between Hayne and Webster, there was a marked revolution of feeling in all parts of the country, even in South Carolina itself. Some of the ablest men in that State, who were honest in their views, and among them Mr. Preston, became satisfied that their position was wrong. Mr. Preston had not then come into public life, had never been in Con- gress ; but he was, some years after that, elected to the United States Senate as a Union man. When he fij'st went to Washington, he had never seen Mr. Webster ; but soon after his arrival they were at some house, by invitation, and he was intro- JIR. WEBSTER AND IHS CONTEMPORARIES. 237 duced to Mr. Webster. After the ordinary court- esies of an introduction had been exchanged, the conversation dropped ; but Mr. Webster noticed that Preston was scrutinizing him, and gazing at him in a manner which was almost rude. Preston said nothing, but did not remove his eyes from Mr. Webster's person. Mr. Webster felt a little annoyed at that sort of staring; and, as it was continued for a minute or more, he turned upon his heel and went to some other part of the room : but, in a moment, Mr. Preston came up to him, and said : " Excuse me, Mr. Webster, for what may seem to be my rudeness in gazing at you. My apology is this. I have had a very strong desire to meet you, and have anticipated with a great deal of pleasure the event of seeing you, and of gazing for the first time upon the man who cured me of that abomina- ble heresy, nullification. You were to me what God was to St. Paul ; I was travelling in the way, verily thinking I was doing God service, when the light burst upon me, the scales fell, and I saw the truth." George Evans was a personal and political friend of Mr. Webster, but opposed his nomination at Bal- timore, in 1852, and went with the Maine delegation for General Scott. Among the many unpleasant in- cidents of that convention, — old friends deserting him and the like, — this affected Mr. Webster more than any thing. It wounded him, and he very sel- dom spoke of it without considerable feeling. Mr. Evans was one of the few men whom he regarded as liis equals in the Senate. They were on inti- 238 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. mate social relations, constantly at each other's houses. Mr. Evans would go into Mr. Webster's almost like a brother, and stop to dine and chat. He was always most profuse in his protestations of regard for, and interest in, Mr. Webster ; and the feeling was reciprocated. The greatest compli- ment ever paid to Evans was by Mr. Webster, just before leaving the Senate ; when he spoke of the retirement of Mr. 'Evans from that body. Mr. Webster said that " The country would lose the services of the distinguished Senator from Maine, who had been Chairman of the Committee on Commerce, and whose reports were models, long unsurpassed in ability, on the subject of Finance. The country had more to regret than the gentle- man, in losing the services of such a man at such a time." Mr. Evans went into the Baltimore Convention, and worked with all his might for the nomination of Scott. The only reason he gave was, that it was of no use, they could not nominate Webster ; that it lay between Scott and Fillmore, and that Scott was the most available man. My comment was, that a man who held that relation of close friendship should, from good faith, whatever he might have thought, have stood by the man who had been his friend, as Mr. Webster had been to Mr. Evans. But he looked upon his duty in a different light. Mr. Webster could hardly believe that Evans would go into the Convention from Maine against him, al- though he was elected as a Scott delegate ; and he never believed, up to the time that the Convention MR. WEBSTER z\ND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 239 met, that Evans would be found opposed to him. He thought Evans had taken the nomination as a Scott man, and that he would figure for Webster when it came to the vote. Evans was made tempo- rary chairman by the Scott delegates, and acted all through with them. I think Mr. Webster never saw him after that. After Mr. Webster's return liome in July, in speaking as he did frequently and freely to me of that Convention, its doingfs, and the part men took in it, he did not show the slightest bitterness. He never uttered one word of reproach against anybody. When I was pretty severe in my comments upon some of the men, he would say : — " Well, they were perhaps acting conscientiously, and did what they deemed to be their duty ; and in this they did right. We must not be too harsh, or judge them too severely ; we must make allow- ance for the selfishness of public men. They thought, perhaps, that their own prospects might be injured by advocating the interest of a man who was not likely to be successful in the Con- vention." I told him that if we could have got the Maine delegation, her thirty-three votes, with the South- ern votes that we knew we could get when they were needed, would have nominated him. " I could not have believed," he replied, " that George Evans would have gone against me under those circumstances ; I never could have believed that he would be found working; aijraiust me." This he said with a srood deal of feelino;. 240 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. i( I regret more than I can express," he added. " that it was done by my friend ; by a man that 1 esteemed as one of my warmest and best friends. But that has passed ; he probably thought he was acting honorably. He had a perfect right to do it, and I have no right to complain. Let it go." For Mr. Hiram Ketchum Mr. Webster had a great regard. He told me once that there was no- body in whom he felt so much confidence, in polit- ical matters, as in him. He did not have a very exalted opinion of New York politicians generally, but made an exception in favor of Mr. Ketchum. Blatchford, too, — w^ho never professed to be much of a politician, and with whom in political matters Mr. Webster did not have much to do, — won his esteem and confidence. He was a disinterested, warm, true, personal friend. Their correspondence shows the cordial feeling which existed between them. Mr. Webster had cordial and friendly relations, while in the Senate, with many of the most promi- nent and earnest of his political opponents. The following letter written by him to Hon. Daniel S. Dickinson, on Mr. Webster's retirement from the Senate and acceptance of the office of Secretary of State, shows that, while there had once been serious differences between the two statesmen, their later intercourse had been of the kind- liest : — Washington, Sept. 27, 1850. My Dbar Sir, — Our companionship in the Senate is dis- solved. After this long and moat important session, you are MK. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 241 about to return to your home ; and I shall try to find leisure to visit mine. I hope we may meet each other again two months hence, for the discharge of our duties, in our respec- tive stations in the Goveriunent. But life is luicertain ; and I have not felt willing to take leave of you without placing in your hands a note, containing a few words which I wish to say to you. In the earlier part of our acquaintance, my dear sir, occur- reuces took place which I remember with constantly increas- ing regret and pain ; because, the more I have known of you, the greater have been my esteem for your character and my respect for your talents. But it is your noble, able, manly, and patriotic conduct, in support of the great measure of this session, which has entirely won my heart and secured my highest regard. I hope you may live long to serve your country ; but I do not think you are ever likely to see a crisis in which you may be able to do so much, either for your own distinction or the public good. You have stood Avhere others have fallen ; you have advanced, with firm and manly step, where others have wavered, faltered, and fallen back ; and for one, I desire to thank you, and to commend your conduct, out of the fulness of an honest heart. This letter needs no reply ; it is, I am aware, of very little value ; but I have thought you might be willing to receive it, and perhaps to leave it where it would be seen by those who shall come after you. I pray you, when you reach your own threshold, to remember me most kindly to your wife and daughter. I remain, my dear sir, with the truest es- teem. Your friend and obedient servant, Daniel Websteb. Hon. Daniel S. Dickinson, U. S. Senate. Speaking once of Senator Thomas J. Rusk, of Texas, Mr. Webster said : — " Good sometimes comes out of evil. How earnestly we opposed the admission of Texas, and how deeply the countiy felt that we were taking iti 242 REMINISCENCIi:S OF DANIEL AVEBSTER. a stranger into our family that was not of us, and that we were going to bring into Congress the rep- resentatives of a people entirely unlike ourselves ! Just think of it ! There is Texas, whose first sen- ators are Houston and Rusk, who, in all the legisla- tion in which they have been called upon to act, have represented their State as well as any State in the Union has been represented. Rusk is one of the very first men in the Senate. He is a man of per- fect integrity, and of a very high order of ability. I like him very much. So we see that the things which we sometimes think are going to injure us the most are really blessings. Providence overrules. In many emergencies we could hardly have done without the conservative vote of Texas. She has alwaj^s been in favor of conservative measures. She went for the Washington Treaty; and, on all measures calculated to strengthen the condition of the whole country, we have found Texas with us." For Samuel A. Eliot Mr. Webster had a very warm friendship. Mr. Eliot stood by him when he came to Congress for the short term, during the discussion of the Compromise Measures. Mr. Web- ster was actively engaged in carrying those meas- ures through, and he used to say that he got great aid and comfort from Samuel A. Eliot. Mr. Eliot was a man who had decided opinions of his own, and who asked no favors. He went to Washing- ton to do what he thought was right, and did it boldly and fearlessly. He was not a politician, and did not think about how he was to get re-elected. He had nothing to do but what he considered his i MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 243 duly, and he did it bravely. I said to Mr. Webster something about a pubhc dinner on the anniversary of the 7th of March, and he wrote to me : — " If any thing of that kind is proposed to me, — which I do not seek, — I shall certainly take no compliment of that kind, unless Mr. Eliot is in- cluded. Every thing is due to him that is to any body. He has been faithful and true, and deserv- ing of all the honor that can be given him in that way." In the autumn of 1850, Mr. Webster was at the North, as usual, spending his time between Marsh- field and New Hampshire. The Democrats of New Hampshire, who had always before treated him with a good deal of coldness and abuse, were very lavish in their attentions and kindness. They seemed to have changed ; there was a returning warmth and sympathy among them, and he re- ceived cordial letters from a good many of them. He received one from Isaac Hill, with whom his relations had been any thing but friendly, asking his pardon, and assuring him of his respect and good wishes. While he and Mrs. Webster were spending a few days at Franklin, I went up there to visit them ; and he told me that he had calls from two or three of the leading men of New Hampshire almost daily. They would drive over from Concord and have a pleasant chat ; and these visits were very grateful to Mr. Webster. I had returned to Boston, and been at home only two or three days, when, on a Friday night, I received a telegraphic despatch from Mr. Webster, saying : " If 244 REiMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. possible, you will oblige me very much by taking the early train to-morrow morning and coming up here." I did not know why the summons came, but supposed he might wish some company over Sunday; and I went, although I had so recently visited him. I made my arrangements, and left in the early train. Nothing particular happened on the way up, till the train stopped at Manchester. There I saw quite a number of gentlemen get into the car in which I was, — men whom I knew by sight, and only by sight. There was one tall, strik- ing looking man, whom I knew as Squire , the father-in-law of Isaac Hill ; and also his son and Senator Norris. The train went on and stopped at Concord, and many others got in; among them General Pierce. There were in the car General Low, Judge Hubbell, and Isaac Hill, and twenty-five more of the leading men of the State. I did not know what was going on ; but finally General Low came and sat on the seat with me. " Going up to Franklin, I suppose," said he. " I guess we shall have a pretty good time." " Where are you going ? " I asked. " We are going up to dine with Mr. Webster," he replied. It was a very rainy day, but the rain was warm and pleasant ; and as the railroad track ran right by Mr. Webster's place, a station was established there, called the " Webster Station," There we stopped, and all jumped out and went into the house. I carried up the news of the nomination MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 245 of William Appleton for Congress from the Fifth District. Mr. Webster seemed perfectly happy, and, in- deed, he said to me : — " How happy I am here ! This is where I breathe my native air. I am in better health here. There is something in the air that invigorates me ; dis- ease doesn't seem to flourish here." He was most cordial and delightful to his guests. They were all highly pleased. He went through the various rooms, making everybody feel at home, and chatting with each guest by turns. The din- ner-hour was announced. Mr. Webster said to me : — " You take General Pierce and Senator Norris up to that end of the table [there were fifty or sixty people] ; go up there and seat yourself and them." Previous to that, General Pierce had come to me, Mr. Webster having made us mutually acquainted, full of enthusiasm about Mr. Webster ; and, taking me aside, said : — " I am going to write a toast." He took a pen and dashed off a very compli- mentary and enthusiastic toast, and gave it to me to show to Mr. Webster. I went down into the kitchen, where Mr. Webster was supervising the arrangements for dinner. " General Pierce has written a toast to call you out," I said. "•' Oh ! " replied he, " have nothing of that kind. 1 have invited my old friends and neighbors, just 246 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. to pay my respects to them and receive their kind wishes. It would not be in good taste to make labored speeches." I returned to General Pierce, and told him that Mr. Webster preferred to have nothing of the kind. " He has got to make a speech," replied the gen eral. " There will be two speeches made to-day, — one I will make, and one he must make." I went back and told Mr. Webster what Gen- eral Pierce's determination was. " Well, then," said he, " tell him to come on. If that is the decision, I am prepared to abide by it." j I returned again, and told this to General Pierce. Then we went into the library and called out Squire , to whom General Pierce said : — " You are the head of the Democracy in New Hampshire : physically you are a head taller, and democratically you are three heads taller, than any man in the State. We want to corner Mr. Web- ster with a sentiment. I have prepared one, and I want you to propose it. It will come with grace and propriety from you." The squire read it, and replied : — " I approve of it with all my heart." " Well," said Pierce, " when the dinner is over, rise and propose that." " I will do so," replied he, " with the greatest pleasure." I sat at one end of the table, and there were Mr. Green, Dr. Wood, and two or three clergymen near. Mr. Webster called upon a venerable clerg^^mau MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 24? to ask a blessing, and lie made a very impressive and appropriate prayer. The dinner was very informal. It was a plain, nicely-cooked, country dinner. At my end of the table there was a leg of roast mutton, and at the other end a piece of roast beef. When the roast meats were removed, tliere was a course of poultry. Some of it had been brought on and removed; but there were still some roast chickens to come, when old Squire , thinking the dinner was over, got up, and put on his spectacles. Pierce whispered to me : " He thinks the dinner is over, and he is going to give his toast. Let's see what Mr. Webster will do." So the squire read his toast, and there was a great hurrah, with three cheers for Mr. Webster. General Pierce was much amused, and was very curious to see how Mr. Webster would get over the matter. He rose, wearing his peculiar air of dignity and simplicity which made you feel a sort of awe and reverence. He bowed, and with con- siderable emotion thanked his venerable friend for the kind sentiment he had pronounced, and his friends around the table for the warm response they had given to the sentiment. Then he stopped, with one of his peculiar expressions, and added : " I believe that John Taylor has some nice roast chickens that he proposes to let us try ; and after he has done so, I will endeavor to respond to the sentiment." He sat down amid some laughter, but the squire was not at all embarrassed. The chickens were 248 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. brought on ; and when the dinner was over, Mr Webster rose and made a speech, — such a speech as I never heard before nor since. It was an ad- dress that ought to be preserved in its fulness. It was one of the most touching and beautiful ever made, even by him. The circumstances under which it was made were very peculiar. It was at the close of an extraordinary career. Up in that little hamlet which he had left some half a cent- ury before, penniless, unknown to fame and to the world, without friends or patronage, he was now closing his illustrious career, receiving the benedic- tions of men who had opposed him throughout his political life from what they deemed true principles. They seemed to have come almost to admit the wrong they had done him. He had not changed ; they had. He referred to that fact in his speech. He said that in some respects this was the best, and in others the saddest, day of his life. As life ad- vanced, and as he approached the end of his term on earth, — which he felt was not very far distant, — there was something peculiarly dear to him in the scenes of his early life. He said that every blade of grass that grew about that spot seemed to have an interest for him. There was no spot on earth he loved so much. Pointing out of the window to the graves of his father and mother, which were marked by simple white stones, he said that this was the house in which those who gave him birth, the authors of his existence, had lived and died ; from that spot they were buried, and their dust reposed within our present sight. He MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 249 said that, after having passed through a stormy pohtical quarrel, he had always turned his steps to that loved spot. Every year he visited those graves and called to mind the remembrance of the virtues of those who once inhabited that house ; and yet even this pious pilgrimage had been made the sub- ject of political abuse. He had been accused of ambition, of selfishness ; and he could not say that he did not feel keenly the injustice of such treat- ment, — treatment that he would rather have re- ceived from any other people that the sun shone upon than the people of New Hampshire. " I felt sure," he went on, " that my motives, as a public man, which had been misrepresented, would at last have justice done to them, because my mo- tives throughout my public career have been pure ; but I did not expect to live to see it. I did not expect to live to see what I see here to-day, — this acknow^'edgment of the honesty of my course. I thought it would come, but I thought it would come after I was gone. It has come in my life- time, and sooner than I expected ; and I thank you, gentlemen, and I thank my God, that it has come. This has been a day ftdl of pleasant memories." He proceeded to pronounce a eulogy upon the virtues of his parents, and again thanked the company for their visit and their attention. That great man standing there, with but two persons about him who were not politically opposed to him, — myself and a kinsman of his, Worcester Webster, — all the rest being Democrats, ex- 250 KEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. hibited to all the greatest tenderness and gen- tleness. After alluding, in the concluding por- tion of his speech, to the Compromise Measures, which had led to his 7th of March speech, wliich was now creating a good deal of feeling in the country, he closed by offering a sentiment complimentary to Senator Norris, who sat on my left, and who was a plain, sensible man, but not a great speech-maker. Mr. Webster said that " New Hampshire had true men in the councils of the nation ; and he wished to bear testimony that day, in the presence of some of his constituents, to the fidelity and patriotism of one of their Senators, who was his guest to-day. Mr. Norris had stood in no little peril, so far as his political career was concerned ; but he had acted conscientiously, and from a high sense of duty and patriotism, in his vote in favor of the Compromise Measures ; and he was sure that, whatever the result might be, Mr. Norris would have the consciousness of having done his duty to his country, — which was really of more value to an upright public man than popular applause." " Come, Norris," said General Pierce, " get up now and make a speech ; you will never have such a compliment as that again." Mr. Norris arose, and made an appropriate and pertinent response. " He considered it," he said, " a great compli- ment to be thus publicly toasted in presence of the leading men of his State. It would not be becom- MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 251 ing in him to bandy compliments with the illustri- ous gentleman ; and he would only say that, with- out his strong arm and influence, those measures of healing would never have passed. If the weight of his influence had been cast in the scale of oppo- sition, the result would have been disastrous ; and what the consequences might have been, he shrank from predicting." General Pierce then rose and made one of his fiery, eloquent, and rather extravagant speeches. In the course of it he related this anecdote. He said that, for political effect, some resolutions were introduced into the New Hampshire legislature by the Abolitionists, denouncing the Compromise Measures. He had a brother in the New Hamp- shire legislature, a young man, and like himself a Democrat. It was pretty well understood that New Hampshire was going to repudiate the Com- promise Measures, and range herself on the side of the opposition : some of the leading Democrats, indeed, showing a disposition in that direction. He (Pierce) was trying a very important case at Manchester, where the court was sitting. Late one afternoon, a man in whom he had confidence came to him and said that his brother was going to vote for the abolition resolutions. " I was full of my case," added General Pierce, " examining my brief, and preparing for argument. But I did not hesitate a moment; I went to the railroad station, but found there was no train till the next morning. I made up my mind to go that night. I sent for the superintendent of the road, 252 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. and asked him to carry me to Concord and bring me back that night. He said there would be some risk in running a train not set down in the time- table ; but I told him that I must see my brother before I slept. He finally consented to send me to Concord, where I arrived safely. I found my brother in bed. By this time I was a good deal excited. I said to him : — " ' Ben, they tell me you are going to vote for the abolition resolutions. Now, I am not here, of course, to dictate to you ; but if you vote for those resolutions, disloyal as they are to the United States, to the Union and the Constitution, — disloyal to every sentiment for which your father fought, — from the time that you cast a vote for those reso- lutions you are no brother of mine : I will never speak to you again.' My brother looked at me in some astonishment, and then said : — " ' You might have saved yourself all this trouble, for I had no more idea of voting for those resolu- tions than of knocking you down.' " I grasped him by the hand, thanked him, and went back to Manchester. The Compromise Meas- ures, which our illustrious host has perilled liis popularity in his adopted State by having exerted his influence to pass, I glory in ; they are the sal- vation of the Union ; and I thank him here to-day. They tell me that Massachusetts proposes to repu- diate him^ and leave him out of the councils of the nation. Let her do it ! Norris, you will resign ; and if Mr. Webster will come up here we will give liim a unanimous election. His mother State will MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 253 send him to the Senate, and feel prouder of the act than of any thing she has ever done. They say we are a small State. They say that our products are granite and ice. Be it so. Of one tiling, how- ever, New Hampshire can boast over her sister States, — that she has given birth to the greatest man, far the greatest man, that was ever born on this continent, and, I verily believe, on any conti- nent. New Hampshire bore Daniel Webster, and she wears that honor proudly. No State can divide it with her ; it is hers, and it is worth more than all the territory that other States may possess ! " This was received with great enthusiasm; and after some further speeches the company dis- persed. General Pierce remained at Franklin till Monday, and we had a great many pleasant chats together. On the very day that General Pierce was nomi- nated for the Presidency, he came into my store, and asked me whom I thought the Whigs would nominate. Their Convention was to be held a month later. " You know whom we want," I said. " Well," replied he, " will they nominate him ? " I said that I hoped, but feared, and considered the result doubtful. " There is no doubt," said he, " about what they ought to do." We walked out together, and as we approached the Tremont House I remarked : — " You will be nominated at Baltimore I should judge." 254 KEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. This was the third day that his friends had been talking about him as a candidate. He spoke as if he very much doubted it ; but when we reached the Tremont House, the news had arrived of his nomination. *' Well, " said he, " all I can say is, and I say it in sincerity, if the people of the United States were to repudiate caucuses, conventions, politi- cians, and tricksters, and rise in the glory of their strength and might, without waiting for any con- ventions to designate a candidate, but bent on placing in the Presidential chair the first citizen and statesman, the first patriot and man, Daniel Webster, — it would do for republican government more than any event which has taken place in the history of the world. Those are my sentiments, democracy or no democracy." General Pierce felt under great obligation to Mr. Webster ; he was true to his memory ; he was true to the bond of personal friendship which existed between them. Notwithstanding the objections of some of his Democratic friends. General Pierce showed a real constancy and devotion in his re- gard for Mr. Webster. In the general's speech at Franklin, he referred to their personal acquaint- ance, and particularly to this incident. He was known to be pretty intimate at Mr. Webster's house in Washington. Isaac Hill was Pierce's col- league in the Senate of the United States ; and rather blamed him once or twice for his intimacy with Webster. This was when party spirit ran very high. One day he received a note from Hill, MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. 255 in which it was hinted that he (Pierce) was rather too intimate at Webster's house ; and that he had better not go there quite so much. The note was answered pretty promptly, in this way : — " So long as I feel that the friendship and inti- macy of Daniel Webster are more honor to me than a seat in the United States Senate, as I do feel it, I shall not be likely to be intimidated by any threat like the one in your own note. You can take your own course ; I shall take mine." Mr. Webster told me of numerous conversa- tions which he had with Louis Philippe when in Europe, and among others one that occurred when he was presented by Mr. Cass. He did not stay long in Paris at this time, his family, Mrs. Paige, and Mrs. Appleton being with him. The etiquette of the court, as he was told by Mr. Cass, made it necessary to dress in a sort of military costume when he was presented. He said that General Cass further told him that the etiquette of the court was that, at the presentation, he must never ask questions, only answer them ; and that he must introduce no conversation except such as was elicited by questions put to him. Mr. Web- ster appropriately arrayed himself, and went with General Cass. He was ushered into a number of rooms, until he came to a very large but very plain and comfortable-looking drawing-room, in which were seated quite a number of ladies, in- cluding the queen and her daughters, — all busy, some writing, and some at needle-work. They all seemed to be on the most familiar footing 256 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. with General Cass. The queen inquired after the health of his family, speaking in English. The young ladies engaged in the conversation, and the talk was very much such an one as would take place in a well-bred family in America. But there was no presentation ! In some eight or ten minutes a side door opened, and the king entered. " He was about your size," said Mr. Webster, speaking to me, " and wore a frock coat, a black cravat without a stiJffener, tied in a hard knot ; his collar was negligently turned down, and limber ; his hair was white, as indicated by the locks which came down from under the black wig that he wore. There were no ornaments about his person, except that there hung down at his right pocket a bunch of seals, attached to his watch, almost as big as a calf's head. He knew I was coming, and he approached me with a hurried step, while General Cass presented me. The king was very informal and very rapid in his movements. He began to ask me a succession of rapid questions which it was impossible for me to answer, and re- peated himself somewhat, speaking in English all the while. He said : — " ' I knew that you had arrived in Europe, Mr. Webster, and I had been looking for you, and be- gan to fear that you would not honor my capital with a visit. It would have been a source of great mortification to me if you had not. I know all about you, sir; and I am dehghted to welcome you to Paris. I have your speeches in my library, and often consult them ; on some subjects they are MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTExMPORARlES 257 models, particularly those relating to Finance. 1 stiuly them more than any other speeches. I know all about your public career. I wish to say many things to you, and hope I shall have an opportunity before you leave Paris.' '' The next day the ladies were presented at court, and on the third day we were all invited to dine with the king and queen ; and there I found every thing just as one would desire in a well-regulated, highly intellectual, and cultivated American family." Mr. Webster had a great many interviews with the king, who sent for him a number of times. The king told him that he saw General Washington return the sword of the Revolution to the Congress at Annapolis. He said : — " I saw him, as I sat upon one of the benches, — that great and good man, who had achieved the liberties of his country, and who had tasted su- preme power, — return his sword, in a speech which, for sublimity and grandeur, has never been surpassed. I can see him now, so deeply is the scene impressed upon my memory, and could, were I master of the pencil, delineate his persomd appearance, even to the very turn of his shoe- buckle. I could almost give every hair of his head faithfully, so deeply was the scene impressed upon me." The king spoke of Washington as the most ex- traordinary man who had ever hved. Mr. Webster added : — ^' When I heard, in such a presence and by such 17 2oS KEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. a person, — then the most intelligent, most poAver- f ul, and best-informed sovereign in Europe, — so high a eiilog}^ and so noble a recognition of the merits of the father of my country, it made me prouder of my country than any thing that had been said or done during my absence from it." Mr. Webster heard Lord Lyndhurst make a speech in the House of Lords, which Avas a thing of rare occurrence, as he seldom spoke after re- tiring from the chancellorship, except when the House was divided upon some important occa- sion. Mr. Webster went to the House with Lord Brougham, who said he had not seen it so full for three years. The crowd was brought out by the fame of Lord Lyndhurst, who was the leading debater on the Tory side. '•The question," said Mr. Webster, "T hardly remember. It was a matter in which I felt no interest; but I felt great interest in the debate. I took particular notice of Lord Lyndhurst. He wore a gray frock-coat ; and, after he rose to ad- dress the Peers, he spoke for forty-five or fifty minutes, moving scarcely more than a statue. He only moved his right hand to his left breast occa- sionally, and so lightly and easily that the wrinkle in the lap of his coat was hardly disturbed." I asked Mr. Webster how Lyndhurst impressed hmi. '•' His style," was the reply, "was conversational, argumentative, logical, without any attempt at brilliancy or rhetoric. One great merit of his speech was, that, in discussing the different points, MK. WEBSTER AND HIS COXTEMPORAKIES. 259 he seemed always to stop when he got througli. He did not use a superfluous Avord or argument. •• Lord Brougham told me," added Mr. Webster, speaking of the debaters in the House of Lords, *•' that my countrj-man, Lord Lyndhurst,' was, he thought, the ablest debater in the House of Lords ; and I rather think that would have been the opin- ion of a majority of the ablest men of England." Mr. Webster vsaid he was very much disappointed in Lord Brougham, who was one of the men whom he had felt an intense interest and curiosity to see ; because he was a famous lawyer, and had occupied a very important place for many years, both in the legal profession of England and in the Parliament- ary discussions. Mr. Webster had some corre- spondence with him, and felt a friendship for him. He said, however, that Brougham's personal appearance and manners were not equal to his reputation. He was rather a trifler in manner, — something of a coxcomb, — and dressed peculiarly. He seemed, from his general tone, to be vain. He was very kind to Mr. Webster, and olfered him I every facility for seeing every thing and every- body. Among other attentions, he was invited to dine with the Duke of Buckingham at the London I Tavern, on white bait, Mr. Webster had so many engagements that it was rather inconvenient for him to accept this courtesy. He was about to de- cline, and expressed his intention of doing so to Lord Brougham. Brougham replied : — 1 John Singleton Copley (Lord Lyndhurst), son of tiie painter of that name, was boru in Boston, 1772. 260 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. " I beg that you won't decline ; the dmner was made chiefly for you. I wish you would go." Mr. Webster accepted and went to the dinner, which was rather an agreeable one. Lord Brougham took him to the courts, and of course he was much impressed with the relations between the ex-Chancellor and the judges. When Mr. Webster went into the Court of King's Bench, the judges insisted upon his sitting on the bench beside them. One night, in the House of Lords, Lord Brougham insisted upon his taking one of the niches that were reserved for very distinguished persons, — such as the royal family, or noblemen of another country. But Mr. Webster asked to be excused, as he said he should prefer to have an unobtrusive place and take a quiet view of the House and its proceedings. He was much struck with the novelty of the mode of doing business ; and, among other things, noticed that there was a constant appeal to " the noble and learned lord " (Brougham), to know what the law was on the subject in debate. Brougham would state the law, and that seemed to settle the point without further discussion. On the evening that he was introduced, he had been dining with Lord Brougham, who was in especial good humor, and disposed to be facetious. He had been appealed to several times for his opin- ion on legal points, when he rose and said : — " If it should have happened that a stranger to our mode of proceeding — a member, for instance, of a distinguished legislative body from another country — should be here to-night ; if any such MR. WEBSTER AND HIS CONTEMPORARIES. tl(j\ person were within the sound of my voice, from what has taken place here to-night he might imagine that I was the most important personage in your lordships' House. I should say to that person, if he should draw any inference like this, that he would be very wide of the mark ; for there is no person who has less influence than he who is now addrevSsing you." The ardent admirers of Kossuth complained of Mr. Webster, that his speech at the Kossuth dinner in Washington was not sufficiently enthusiastic. No language, probably, which Mr. Webster could have used, consistent with his taste and prudence, would have satisfied the crowd, or risen to the boiling-point of popular enthusiasm at that time. He understood the character of Kossuth then as perfectly as the intelligent public now know it. From the few intimations of his opinion left on record, it is evident that Mr. Webster regarded Kossuth as a true patriot, a devoted advocate of liberty, and a brilliant orator ; but too impulsive in his feelings, too poetic in his temperament, and too visionary in his proposed measures, to be a safe leader of reform or a judicious statesman. Still, he admired the man, and wished success to his cause. Writing to Mr. Blatchford, in January, 1852, he alludes to his dinner speech in these terms : — " I wish to act a conservative part always ; but then, two things I had to think of : first, to say nothino; inconsistent with what I have said so often about the principles of the Holy Alliance ; secondly, 262 KEMINISCENCEb OF DANIEL WEBSTER. to take care that our political opponents shall have no well-founded charge against us for coolness in the cause of hberty. Then again, I wished to give as little offence as possible to governments with whom we are at peace." These certainly are very proper considerations to influence a statesman of " large, roundabout common sense," looking before and after, and weighing the effect of his words, both upon the American people and foreign nations. The en- thusiastic patrons of the exiled Magyar wished Mr. Webster to use such language as would be appropriate to a village caucus, where the ap- proaching town election might be affected by the public favor shown to this European reformer. The result has proved where true wisdom lay, and that the language of Mr. Webster was all that a conscientious regard for duty required. CHAPTER VIII. HOME LIFE: MARSHFIELD AND FRANKLIN. To every one who was at all familiar with Mr. Webster's habits and feelings, it was evident that his home, and every thing connected with it, were peculiarly dear to him. After absorbing labors in the capitol or in the court-room, he always turned his face gratefully toward Marshfield. It was there that he sought leisure to meditate upon his triumphs ; it was thither that he turned for conso- lation, when harassed and overcome by disappoint- ment. No doubt, he enjoyed the excitements of his profession and of public life : to gain a forensic victory was certainly a delight to him ; to mingle in the fray of party warfare, to be the champion of principles he had embraced against foemen wor- thy of his steel, were sensations not disagreeable to him. But he always seemed most happy and most contented at home in Marshfield, surrounded by a family to whom he was tenderly devoted, within reach of the scenes of favorite sports and pastimes, and absorbed by the many quiet interests of the homestead and the farm. He never lost the fondness for agriculture Avhich grew in his early childhood, and which he inherited from his an- cestry of New Hampshire yeomen. When most 264 KEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. deeply engaged in duties of State at AVashington, he always snatched time to keep watch of his farms, and to send John Taylor and Porter Wright mstructions, the most minute and careful, concern- ing the planting of his crops, and the raising, buy- ing, and selling of his horses, cattle, and poultry. His fondness for the home of his childhood at Franklin has already been remarked ; and it was one of the happiest circumstances of his life, that he was able, so long as he lived, to retain posses- sion of the fields and pastures familiar to the sports and labors of his early years. Before the year 1825, it had been Mr. Webster's custom, for several years, to pass a part of each summer at Sandwich. There, in company with his friend, George Blake, he indulged his taste for shootino; and fishing;. But the establishment of a large glass manufactory, and the arrival of many operatives, who, on their holidays, overspread the country with guns and dogs, had thinned out the game to such an extent that the neighborhood ceased to supply good sport. Mr. Webster men- tioned this to his friend, Isaac P. Davis ; who there- upon recommended him to apply to Captain John Thomas of Marshfield, whom Mr. Davis knew well, and who, he was confident, would gladly entertain Mr. Webster at his house, and grant him the free- dom of his marshes, where he would find a great abundance of sport. Mr. Webster resolved to act upon the suggestion. He took his wife and eldest son in a chaise and drove to Marshfield. HOME LIFE: MARSHFIELD AND FRANKLIN. 265 As they passed over the brow of Black Mount, in front of Captain Thomas's residence, Mrs. Web- ster, without knowing that it was the very place they were to visit, called her husband's attention to the beautiful prospect before them, and bade him stop the horse to gaze at the scenery; re- marking that, if she ever were to have a retreat in the country, she should prefer the one before her to any she had ever seen. They drove up to the house. Captain Thomas received the party with great cordiality, and in his hearty manner embraced and kissed Mrs. Webster. He shouted with stentorian voice to his excellent wife, and then opened the door and ushered the visitors into his cosey old house. His wife and sons soon made their appearance, and were introduced ; and in a short time the unexpected guests were as much at home as they ever were afterwards during their residence at Marshfield. It was this strong preference of his wife that first suggested to Mr. Webster the thought of pur- chasing the place, which he afterwards did ; making large additions to the estate and to the dwelling- house. There are some interesting points in the history of Marshfield, which give an additional charm to its delightful scenery. It was early settled by tlie Pilgrims and their followers. It was the residence of Peregrine White, the first white child born in New England ; and his remains are buried in the old Winslow grave-yard on the premises of Mr. Webster. 266 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTEK. The family of Winslow, so distinguished in colo- nial days, were natives of this place. The first Governor of that name married the mother of Peregrine White, after the death of her first hus- band. The Thomases were another distinguished family, and with the Winslows owned nearly all of that domain which is now known as South Marshfield. Many anecdotes of the various members of these two families are still current in that part of the country: one for its quaintness is worth pre- serving. On the death of Dr. Winslow, the good parson of the parish preached a sort of funeral oration. He began by speaking of the death of that great and good man, Governor Winslow. He had hoped at his decease that his valiant son, General Wins- low, would have succeeded to all his father's graces ; and on the death of General Winslow he had prayed that his son and successor might be no worse a man than his father; it was, he said, a small request, but Heaven had not seen fit to grant it ! Just before the breaking out of the Revolution, Nathaniel Ray Thomas, who was a royalist, had been appointed one of the king's " Mandamus Counsellors," a sort of appointment very offensive at the time to all the Whigs. General Gage was then with his troops in Boston. The times were so troubled, and the people so threatening, that it was thought necessary to despatch a party of troops for Mr. Thomas's protection. Accordingly, a hun- dred picked men from the British army were sent HOME LIFE: MAKSIIFIELD AND FRANKLIN. 267 down and .stationed at his house, to guard the property and to keep the neighbors in awe. On the day after the battle of Lexington, how- ever, a despatch was sent from headquarters at Boston announcing the event, and ordering Cap- tain Balfour, who commanded the detachment, to return at once to Boston. This news, communi- cated to the British officer, was in advance of any received by the Whigs, who were hovering around the residence and along the roads, not wishing to be the first to attack, but desiring good cause of open resistance. Captain Balfour was able to make good his retreat to Boston before those who were watching his movements knew their cause ; other- wise, it is not unlikely that he and his men would never have lived to take part in the battle of Bunker Hill where they fought, and where he fell, pierced by seven bullets, though he survived his wounds. As soon as the force was withdrawn, and the knowledge of what had taken place at Lexington had transpired, Mr. Thomas knew that his resi- dence was no longer safe; and, fearing to travel by the road, he mounted a swift horse, and took to the beaches, swimming the various rivers that divided them, and arrived safely at Hingham. There he chartered a small vessel, and made his way to Boston ; thus suddenly and for ever taking leave of his home and estate at Marshfield. His family soon followed, with one exception ; and on the evacuation of Boston by General Gage, they repaired to Nova Scotia, where their descendants now remain. 268 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTEH. The one exception to this exodus was in the person of the youngest son, John Thomas, who was a Whig, or rebel, and stoutly refused to leave, or to join the royal cause. The property was con- fiscated by the General Court of Massachusetts, and thus passed from the family. After the Revo- lution, however, Mr., then Captain, John Thomas, applied to the Legislature for a restitution to him of some part of the estate ; and by the friendly assistance of Perez Morton, afterward Attorney- General, obtained his mother's dowry, — one third of the real estate. Captain Thomas, at the time of Mr. Webster's first acquaintance with him, was in embarrassed circumstances, and his estate was mortgaged. He was already advanced in years, and most of his children had received their portion, and left the old homestead. Two sons only remained with him. They were quite willing that the farm should be sold. Mr. Webster purchased it on condition that Captain Thomas and his wife should remain there as long as they lived. Accordingly, the kind, hos- pitable old gentleman occupied his favorite room in the house till the time of his death, which took place some years after, at an advanced age. Mr. Webster became interested in the family, and undertook to provide for the remaining sons. The elder of the two engaged in business at Hingham ; and the younger went into the count- ing-house of Stephen White, of Salem. He was afterwards sent into the Western States, by Mr. Webster, as a land agent, and died while visiting Washington to see his employer. HOME LIFE: MARSHFIELD AND FRANKLIN. 269 The intimacy and friendship between Captain Thomas and Mr. Webster were pecuhar. The captain, though much Mr. Webster's senior, soon learned to look up to him with respect and admi- ration ; he made Mr. Webster his Magnus Apollo, and at the same time entertained for him a sort of paternal affection. He deferred to Mr. Webster in all matters, excepting in some practical rules of farming, the nicer points of sporting, and the habits of birds, wild fowl, and fish, — in all which matters the captain was Mr. Webster's instructor. Their association, alwaj^s pleasant, grew into mu- tual affection ; and Captain Thomas, who, at Mr. Webster's suggestion, subscribed for the semi- weekly " Columbian Sentinel," watched, with the most intense interest, Mr. Webster's course in the Senate, as reported in that journal. In 1829-30, the good captain read Hayne'a first speech. He waited, in confidence, for a tri- umphant reply. It came, and he was entirely sat- isfied. The faithful " Sentinel," however, soon brought him Hayne's second speech. He read it with extreme and painful interest. It excited in him the gravest apprehensions for the idol of his old age. He was overwhelmed with grief. His hero, his great man, his beloved, al- most worshipped friend, was overthrown in debate by his Southern antagonist. The kind old gentle- man's pride was humbled ; he was in despair, — his heart almost broken. Castmg away the paper, he rose and retired slowly to his room, directing some one to come and take his boots away, as he should 270 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. never want them again. His family tried in vain to console him. He refused to be comforted. Like one of old, he was ready to exclaim : " Ye have taken away my gods, and what have I more ? " For three days he kept his bed, mourning over the fall of his friend, and refusing all consolation. His eldest son tried to persuade him that Mr. Web- ster was able to defend the cause of New England, and would yet have his triumph. His only reply was: "It can't be answered, Henry, it can't be answered." The fatal semi-weekly " Sentinel " came again in due course. It was evening. The family were gathered around the fire in sad apprehension : the old man's mind seemed almost unhinged, — they even feared for his life. The captain still kept his bed, and appeared to have determined to hold to his vow never to rise from it. All their efforts to rouse him had, thus far, proved ineffectual. On opening the paper, it was found to contain Mr. Webster's second reply to Colonel Hayne. The family at once resolved that Henry should assume the task of carrying it to his father, and try the effect of this medicine to " minister to a mind dis- eased.' Henry entered his father's room with the paper and a candle. The old man groaned, and asked what he wanted. Henry replied : — " Father, I have brought you the ' Sentinel ; ' I thought you might like to look at it." " No, Henry, I don't want to see it." " It contains a second speech of Mr. Webster, in reply to Colonel Hayne." HOME LIFE: MAUSHFIELD AND FRANKLIN. 271 " Oh, Henry ! " said the old gentleman, "• it is of no use ; it can't be answered ; I don't want to see it." Henry lingered, and seemed greatly distressed at his father's refusal. At last. Captain Thomas con- sented to have the paper and candle left, and said that perhaps he would look at it. Henry went downstairs, and reported the apparently unsuccess- ful result of his mission ; and the little famil}^ drew closely around their winter fire more gloomily than before. Some time had thus elapsed, when they were all suddenly startled by a tremendous shout from their father's room. They all rushed upstairs together to see what had happened. The captain was sit- ting on the side of the bed, with the paper in one hand and the candle in the other. As Henry en- tered, the captain roared out : — " Bring me my boots, Henry ! bring me my boots ! " Captain Thomas's recovery was so complete, that he never again suffered a relapse of that mental complaint. Mr. Webster, in a speech at Rochester, said : " Why, gentlemen, I live on the sandy seashore of Marshfield, and get along as well as I can 1 am a poor farmer upon a great quantity of poor land ; but my neighbors and I, by very great care, — I hardly know how, — contrive to live on." What he says of the soil of Marshfield is literally true. Where it is neglected and not enriched by 272 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. the frequent application of manure, it soon loses its productive power, yielding nothing but stunted trees and a peculiar light-colored moss, which crackles beneath the feet of the traveller like dry shavings, and is just about as nutritious for sheep and cattle. Mr. Webster did not select this place for his residence because it yielded the best crops ; but because, all things considered, it com- bined the advantages of sea and land, of running streams and quiet lakes, and presented more at- tractive scenery than could be found elsewhere in New England. It abounded in game of all descrip- tions. The land yielded animals and birds; the ocean, fishes. His tastes were therefore gratified. Finding a thin and barren soil in many places, de- nuded of trees by the axe, he studied the capabili- ties of his land, and sought at once the means of enriching it and clothing it with trees. Mr. Webster had a passion for planting trees, as well as for rearing fine animals. He often said to young farmers, " Plant trees, adorn your grounds, live for the benefit of those who shall come after you." He spoke with contempt, almost with in- dignation, of the stupidity and selfishness of those who refuse to plant trees because they may not live to see their maturity or taste their fruit. It was his practice to try experiments with every variety of forest trees, shade trees, and fruit trees, from different States and countries. Of course, many of them failed ; but a larger number suc- ceeded, and the trees " still live " to bear witnes? to his wisdom and benevolence. HOME LIFE: MAllSKFIELD AND FRANKLIN. 273 Finding tlie soil of his farm naturally poor, he proceeded to invent ways and means of enriching it. He found the law of " compensation," which in other instances so fully marks the works of the Creator, in operation here also. The ocean, which made the adjacent soil so sandy and gravelly, con- tained in its bosom, and often cast upon the shore, the very best materials for enriching that soil. Though the land in the vicinity had been occu- pied for two centuries, no one had thought of enriching it wdth the products of the sea. Mr. Webster began to inquire at once, whether the kelp and menhaden from the adjacent waters could profitably be used as manure. The only obstacle in the way was the want of access with teams to the beach. A bridge and causeway were wanted over a small creek and the adjacent marsh, which lay between his arable lands and the ocean. The necessary improvements were made by the subscription of neighboring farmers at Mr. \Yeb- ster's instigation, he himself heading the contribu- tion and paying most liberally for the purpose. The fish which he used for manure are a species of herring not known in Europe, but called in the United States " hard-heads " and " menhaden." In summer they migrate North, and appear off the shore at Marshfield in June or July. When the weather is mild and the sea smooth, they approach the shore and enter the mouths of rivers and creeks, and sometimes seem to be driven alino.st out of the water by sharks and other large fishes that feed on them. They are taken in 18 274 I?EMIKISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. seinas, are drawn off by cartloads, and spread upon the land. Mr. Webster sometimes used ten or twelve loads to the acre. Occasionally, a com- post was made by mixing large quantities of loam or muck or decayed vegetable matter with the fish ; and, by digging it over once or twice in the autumn, a very excellent manure was prepared for the next spring. The use of the fish, when spread upon the soil, always brought with it swarms of flies of a peculiar hue and size, which for a time were very troublesome to laborers and housekeep- ers in the neighborhood. General Lyman gives a conversation which he had about them with a man ni Pembroke, Mass. " I told him," said he, " that I was going to Marshfield. " ' Well,' said the man, ' you will, of course, see the squire's farm.' " • Quite likely,' I replied. " ' Well,' said he, ' 3^ou will see something worth seeing ; yet I did not know, two months ago, but that he would drive us all out of Pembroke. I believe the squire spreads on his land, in the sum- mer, about all the fish he can find in the sea and get out of it. These breed a pestilent quantity of black flies ; not our common house-flies, but black, glossy fellows, that come about two hundred times as thick as you ever saw common flies about a plate of molasses. When the wind is east, it brings them here, and they remind us of Scripture times and the plagues of Egypt. However, they don't trouble us long ; for when the wind changes, they make o£f HOME LIFE: MARSHFIELD AND FRANKLIN. 275 for Cape Cod.' " These insects were known in the neierhborhood as " Webster flies." The effect of this kind of manure is felt by the soil for many years, and when once put into good 3ondition by a liberal outlay for fish, it amply re- pays all expenses by the abundant crops which it afterwards yields. This species of fish has now be- come an article of commerce in the vicinity of the ocean. The usual length of the menhaden is from ten to fifteen inches ; its weight, about one pound. Two hundred of them fill a barrel, which is worth at the shore fifteen or twenty cents. It is thought that one fish is equivalent to a shovelful of common manure. Very large quantities are taken by fish- ermen at a single haul, — often from one hundred to five hundred barrels. They are too oily to be valuable for food, and are used chiefly as fertilizers of the land or as bait for larger fish. The kelp, or rock -weed, was another product of the sea much employed by Mr. Webster to restore his worn-out lands. After an eastern storm, large masses of this weed are thrown upon the beach ; and, if drawn off and applied immediately to the soil, it is found to be worth as much as three times the quantity of ordinary barn manure. It costs nothing except the drawing ; but, when green and wet, it is exceedingly heavy and difficult to be moved. After the building of the bridge over the creek, most of the farmers, for many miles around, began to visit the beach with their teams and draw off the kelp. This has greatly increased the productive power, and of course the value, of their !; anecdote of himself : " Sittinijr one day at the bar in Portsmouth with an elderly PERSONAL TRAITS. 371 member of the bar, his friend, who enjoyed with sufficient indulgence that part of a lawyer's lot wliich consists ' in hving well,' Mr. Webster made an epitaph which would not be unsuitable : — " ' Natus consumere fruges, Frugibus consumptis Hie jacet R. C. S.'" At the close of the letter he added the followmg postscript, relative to the cause on trial : — Half-past two o'clock. Cessat Taber ; Choate sequitur, in questione juris, crastino die. Taber is learned, sharp, and dry; Choate, full of fancy, soaring high: Both lawyers of the best report, True to their clients and the court; What sorrow doth a Christian feel, Both should be broken on a wheel ? It should be said, to explain the last line, that the cause in dispute was a question of the infringe- ment of a patent for making car-wheels. George W. Nesmith, of Franklin, New Hamp- shire, was for many years a valued and trusted friend of Mr. Webster, and used to attend to many of his business matters about Elms Farm. In May, 1846, Mr. Webster received a letter from a person residing in Salisbury, soliciting aid and professing to be in very needy circumstances. He thereupon addressed to Mr. Nesmith the following letter : May 28, 1846. Dbak Sir, — If you know the writer of this letter, and he is both poor and deserving, you may say to him when you 372 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. see him, that I am just about as poor as he is ; that I have worked more than twelve hours a day for fifty years, on an average ; that I do not know experimentally what wealth is, nor how the bread of idleness tastes : but that I have generally been blessed with good health in my peison and my family, for which I give thanks to Providence ; also that I have compassion for such cases of sickness and afiliction as appear to have visited him and his family ; and, if you think five or six dollars would be well bestowed, please hand them to him on my account. Yours, &c., D. Webster. Mr. Nesmith, upon inquiry, found the case to be one of real destitution and suffering, and bestowed the charity as directed, which was received with tears of gratitude. Mr. Webster sometimes gave evidence of busi- ness tact and strictness, which showed that, if he had given attention to his financial affairs, they would have been well reo-ulated. Some time in the year 1840, he purchased some furniture of an upholsterer in Boston. On his return from Washington, after a few montlis' ab- sence, the bill was presented. It was his impres- sion that he had paid for the articles at the time of their purchase ; and he asked the creditor to call at another time. The same bill was regularly presented every time Mr. Webster returned to the city. The creditor at length became insolent in his demands ; he complained because he was compelled to call so often for a small bill, and intimated that he should not run after a debtor, if he were ever so great a man, any more ; that the law was the same for the high and the low, the rich and the PERSONAL TRAITS. 373 poor, and lie should not be slow in calling in its aid. Mr. Webster took all this very quietly', say- ing : " Call on me, sir, to-morrow at noon, and your bill shall be settled." The man replied that he would call at that hour, and should expect his money without fail. After he had withdrawn, Mr. Webster walked into the adjoining room, occupied by his partner, Mr. Healy, and observed that a man had called several times for the payment of a bill for furniture, " which," said he, " I have the im- pression has already been paid either by me or by yourself. I wish, Mr. Healy, you would look among my receipts for the last two years, and see if you do not find one for this account." Mr. Healy examined the files of receipts in the course of the afternoon ; and, on the next morning, brought to Mr. Webster two receipts for the same bill in two successive years. " Lay them on my table, if you please," said Mr. Webster. The same day at noon, punctual to the minute, the injured cred- itor called. Putting on the air of one whose pa- tience had been sorely tasked, he asked if Mr. Webster was ready to settle. Mr. Healy had taken the precaution to have the door between the two offices open, that he might witness the interview, expecting, as he said, an explosion. But in that he was disappointed ; for Mr. Webster, without rising from his seat, simply scanned the man for a moment over his shoulder, and, holding out to him the two receipts, remarked : — " The charges in this bill I always considered exorbitant. I thought them so when I paid it: 374 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. Mr. Healy had the same impression when he paid it, as my agent; and as you already have been twice paid, as appears by these receipts, it strikes me that, if a reasonable man, you ought to be satisfied." The countenance of the proud creditor fell. He left the room without utterino- a word. Mr. Web- ster never sought to recover back the money which he had overpaid. Mr. Abbott, long Mr. Webster's private secretary, has given the following testimony to his strictness in the payment of his debts : — " From my personal knowledge, derived from keeping the private accounts of Mr. Webster, 1 have some opportunity of knowing. Not a bill has been presented for two or more years during which I have been with him but has been promptly paid ; and a few days before he died he called the overseer of his farm, gave him five hundred dollars to pay every man, and sent for the minister and paid all that was due him. So it shall not be said Daniel Webster died in debt to any man." Mr. Barney, of Baltimore, who has already been referred to, gave the following testimony, a few weeks after Mr. Webster's death, at once to his indifference to money and his sensitiveness about receiving it in any other way than as a legitimate reward of services : — " There was no subject on which this eminently great and good man was more sensitive ; and I pro- pose to add one incident, illustrative of the refine- ment of feeling which characterized him. PERSONAL TRAITS. 375 *' Dining with him and Mrs. Webster alone, on the fourth of July, he being then very feeble, I urged on him to seek by change of continent to escape the annual return of the rheum, or hay fe- ver, which attacked him periodically on the 20th of August, and from which he had been entirely free when in England. " Knowing that the kind sympathy and gener- ous affection of the President would induce him to assign to Mr. Webster any duty whereby his health and happiness might be promoted, I suggested his acceptance of the embassy to the court of St. James. " He replied : ' Mr. Abbott Lawrence expends seventy thousand dollars a year in sustaining the dignity of this position. I am without means to meet any expenditure beyond the salary.' " To this I said : ' Your numerous friends, who earnestly desire that you should prolong your in- valuable life, wdll never permit your individual resources to be exhausted ; and I am authorized to say that whatever funds are necessary will be promptly supplied.' " ^ Sir,' said he, with a sternness never before displayed to me in an intercourse of a quarter of a century, ' I duly appreciate the kindness and liberality of my friends, but I cannot consent to be their pensioner. Never repeat such a sug- gestion.' " I still shudder at the recollection of his indis;- nant frown. "■ He had fully realized the truth of one of his 376 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. own aphorisms : * The man who enters public life takes upon himself a vow of poverty, to the relig- ious observance of which he is bound so long as he remains in it.' And his poverty vindicated his integrity." Mr. Webster liked to hear good anecdotes, whether humorous, historical, or personal, and always listened to them with attentive interest. He could appreciate a joke or a good " point," and caught it very quickly. Not only was he a good listener to anecdotes, but he loved to tell them himself ; and often beguiled leisure hours by re- lating stories of his boyhood, of the neighbors and " characters " of his early home, and incidents con- nected with his practice at the bar, illustrating the traits of distinguished men. I gather here a few that he used to tell ; and those who have heard him relate anecdotes know how well he did it. There was a lawyer who lived in his neighbor- hood in New Hampshire, he said, who was famous for his skill in collecting debts. There was a great deal of litigation in New Hampshire at that time, and almost everybody was sued before a debt was paid. If a note was given to this lawyer to collect, he was sure to get the money from the debtor. He snapped at that kind of business ; and anybody who had a note that they could not get in any other way, would go with it to him. He was out fish- ing one day on a pond, when his little craft was wrecked, and he was drowned. There was great consternation among his neighbors, and they went to raking and dragging the pond to find his body, PERSONAL TRAITS. 377 working in this way for days without any success. At last, a queer wag, who had been sued a good many times by this lawyer, was seen one morning standing on the bank of the pond, with a fishing- line thrown into the water. Somebody came along and asked him, — " What are you fishing for ? " " Oh," said he, " for . There is a prom- issory note on the end of that line ; and I think, dead or alive, if it gets to his nose, he will grab at it. If this won't fetch him, nothing will." To illustrate the power of character and address upon a rabble, Mr. Webster related this anecdote. Shays's rebellion, so called, extended into New Hampshire ; and the mob there, as in Massachu- setts, resisted the law, and would not permit the courts to sit. In some parts of New Hampshire the mob was very violent. The courts were afraid to hold their sittings for fear of the mob, although no actual violence took place. The supreme court of New Hampshire was composed of some of the ablest judges in New England, before that time or since. The high-sheriff was old General Sullivan, of Revolutionary fame. He lived in Portsmouth, and had a high reputation for personal courage, which he had earned in the war ; and he was, withal, a high-toned, earnest Christian. Being the high- sheriff, he had charge of the court. The question was mooted, whether they should attempt to hold a court in Sullivan County, where they knew the seat of this rebellion was. The judges were timid ; 378 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER, and, although they felt that it was a great wrong done to the law and the right for the court to be obliged to yield to a mob, they felt that they had no means to enforce their authorit3^ They feared that the civil posse at their command could not protect them. General Sullivan was consulted, and he said : — '' We will go and open the court in Keene on the day when by law it is there to be held, and I will see that every thing is right." So they prepared to set out. In those days the stage accommodations were not good, and most i of the travelhng by all classes was done on horse- back. They put their clothes in their saddle-bags ; and Sullivan, without the knowledge of the judges, put into his portmanteau his whole military suit, — coat, epaulettes, and sword, — the same that he had worn in the Revolutionary War. His servant took his luggage on one horse, and he rode on an- other ; and, in this way, the sheriff and the j adges started from Portsmouth. They were a day or two making the journey, and were constantly getting reports from Keene as to the sentiments of the people. There seemed to be a strong feeling of indignation and a determination to resist the hold- ing of the court. The people were apparently re- solved that the Rebellion cases should not be tried ; and this sentiment seemed to be unanimous. As the judicial party approached Keene they stopped to dine, and were told that they coidd never get to the court-house ; or, if they did, they never would be allowed to hold the court : and the PEKSONAL TRAITS. 379 judges ^vere half inclined to turn back. But Gen- eral Sullivan said : — '" Be firm ; all you have to do is to be firm." When the}^ got within about four miles of Keene, they began to receive reports directly from that place. Persons who had been there met the judges with the news, that hundreds of exasperated people were gathered from the surrounding country to pre- vent any judicial proceedings. The judges turned pale, and looked at Sullivan. They said : — " We don't wish to be mobbed, and nothing can be gained by going on : we have no civil posse or power to enforce respect." The old hero replied : — " You follow me, and it all will end right." When within about three miles of Keene, he dis- mounted from his horse and took out his military suit. The judges looked at him in amazement, while he attired himself in full uniform. He was a man fully six feet high, as straight as an Indian and as brave as a lion ; and his military accoutre- ments gave him a still more commanding appear- ance. When he was all ready, even to the spurs at his heels, he mounted his horse, and told the judges to follow him and to keep close by him. He drew his sword, and rode his horse to the front. On the outskirts of the village, he met a crowd of men so dense as to completely block the road. General Sullivan shouted out : — " Make way for the court ! Let there be no obstructing; the court ! " The people recognized the old general^ and one 380 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. of the mob said : •'•' I fought under him at such a place ; " and they gazed at him. He bowed pleas- antly to those he recognized. He halted to ask after the health of some of them and that of their families; and the old affection of his comrades in war was revived, apparently causing them to for- get why they had thus assembled. Before the party reached the hotel, the crowd was around old Sullivan, overwhelming him with attention. They found the hotel full of people, and crowds standing about everywhere. The judges went into the hotel and sat down, when Sullivan said : — " I would open the court and immediately ad- journ it, giving as a reason that there are no law- yers present and no cases -ready." Acting upon this advice, they prepared to walk over to the court-house. General Sullivan called for the man who had the keys ; who, when he came, said " it would not do to attempt to open the court." General Sullivan replied : — " Take the keys of the court-house and go in front of me." So he drew his sword, and they started, the jani- tor leading the way. General Sullivan coming next, and the judges following. When there appeared to be the slightest attempt to crowd the path or obstruct a free passage, the general would cry out, ^' Make way for the court ! " and they finally reached the door. Then Sullivan said to the janitor : — " Put in the key and open the door." The frightened man did so, and the judges went in, the crowd pouring in after and hlUng up the PERSONAL Til AITS. o81 house. The judges took their seats, aud the gen- eral sat down at the clerk's desk. He called upon the crier to open the court ; and that form was complied wdth. He then said : " The court is now open," and took olf his cap and sword and laid them on the desk ; then he called upon the chap- Iain to offer prayer. That over, a judge rose and said : — " There seem to be no suitors here and no clerk, and I will therefore adjourn the court for three months." Sullivan got up, deliberately put on his cap and sword, and shouted : " Gentlemen, make way for the court ! " and they returned to the hotel, mounted their horses, and rode off. Mr. Webster said that the moral of this incident was the power of character over a mob. The feel- ing inspired among the mob at Keene was that it was of no use to resist General Sullivan ; and three thousand exasperated men, who had come there with violent purposes, had been subdued by one man without any power and by the mere force of his character and courage. " That very thing," said Mr. Webster, " did more to quell that rebel- lion and allay the bitter feeling of the people than any other event. Despite the threats of the peo- ple, a court had been opened and had adjourned simply for the want of business. This fact gave the people a different idea of the real power of the law, and the respect which should be paid to it." Mr. Webster used to tell a good story of Samuel Adams and Paul Revere. Samuel Atlams was op' 882 REmNISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. posed to the Constitution. He was a strong Repub- lican, and had fears about the powers of the general j| government. The mechanics were, in a body, in favor of the adoption of the Constitution, thinking that their interests would be promoted. They assembled in great numbers, Paul Revere at their bead, and held a meeting at the " Green Dragon," for the purpose of passing resolutions to be sent to the Convention, declaring their opinion in favor of the Constitution. They appointed a committee, of which Paul Revere was chairman, to carry the resolutions to Samuel Adams. The committee accordingly repaired to him, and Revere stated that he was chairman of a committee of mechanics held at the " Green Dragon " on the previous evening, which had been appointed for the purpose of delivering to him the resolutions respecting the Constitution which the meeting had adopted. Mr. Adams said : — " Mr. Revere, how many mechanics were there in the ' Green Dragon ' when these resolutions were passed ? " " There were more mechanics in the ^ Green Dragon ' than the ' Green Dragon ' could hold." " There were more than the ' Green Dragon ' could hold ? Well, where were the mechanics that the ' Green Dragon ' could not hold ? " " They were in the street." " Well, how many mechanics were there in the street ? " " There were more mechanics in the street than there are stars in lieaven, Mr. Adams ! " I PERSONAL TRAITS. 383 Mr. Webster used to say that he wished he had the time, as lie had the disposition, to write an ac- count of the early New Hampshire settlements. His father was one of the pioneers who went from the sea-shore, down near Portsmouth, and settled upon the extreme borders of civilization. All that lay between them and Canada was the primeval wilderness, inhabited by Indians and wild beasts. There were some incidents connected with the early history of those settlements, the recital of which, while truthful history, w^ould be more in- terestinsr than fiction. He related one incident to show the relations that existed between the whites and the Indians. The Indians used to make occasional incursions upon the settlements, so that the wdiites were often in fear, and resorted to various means to propitiate the Indians. They found it necessary to gather their wives and children in a block fort, from the top of which, when the Indians threatened, the women Avould blow a trumpet, in order to bring the men back from the fields, whither they always carried their guns. The Indians were treacherous, and the settlers felt that they could place no de- pendence upon them ; their treaties never being regarded as secure. The settlers, however, made use of presents to pacify the red men, and finally many of the latter became much addicted to the use of rum and tobacco. In the neighborhood of Webster's father, there lived a man named John •Hanson, a laboring man, who was often employed to do work for the Websters. His boys were 384 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WERSTER. about Daniel's age. Hanson himself was some- what addicted to strong drink, and when in liquor was very quarrelsome, and of great vio- lence of temper. The Indian chiefs, particularly the young chiefs, often visited the white settle- i ments, occasionally prolonging their stay for a week; at which times they were always treated with great hospitality. One of the old chief,>^ finally came, and stayed eight or ten days, paying | his \dsit chiefly at Hanson's house. One morning Hanson and this old chief took their guns and started for Dover, — a pretty long jaunt. The next day but one, Hanson came back, but the Ind- ian was not with him. Somebody asked him, — " Where is the Indian ? " ^' Oh," replied he, " he went home by another way." 13ut there was something about Hanson's appear- ance that led the people to fear that all was not right. Hanson had evidently been on a spree, was a little excited, and did not give a very straight account of the Indian. In the course of a week or ten days, some men, as they were crossing a stream on a little log bridge about four miles distant, looked down and saw the remains of the old Ind- ian. They took the body out, and found a bullet- hole through him. As it proved afterwards, Han- son and the Indian had got into an altercation, both being full of liquor, and Hanson had shot him, and thrown him into this brook. The whole settle- ment was filled with excitement. It was a bloody, murderous, and wicked deed in itself ; and in it? PERSONAL TRAITS 385 consequences it was alarming. The vindictiveness of the Indians was proverbial. They were bound by their code to take vengeance upon anybody wdio had slain an Indian, and this was an old chief ; so that everybody in the settlement looked for an immediate attack from the tribe. Hanson was at once arrested, and sent to Dover jail. A commit- tee was then chosen to visit the tribe and apprise them of the facts. They proceeded to the Indian encampment, carrying with them the remains of the chief. They told them of the murder ; that John Hanson had committed it, and that it was probably done in liquor. They added, that Han- son would be tried for his life, and, if found guilty, he would be hung ; and they wished the tribe to know that this man's life would just as soon be taken for killing an Indian as for killing a white man. This was said to propitiate them, and seemed to have its effect. But by and by the sentiment that a white man's life should never be taken for that of an Indian gained ground among the settlers, and a re-action took place in favor of Hanson. The result was, that in the course of a few weeks a dozen stout fellows painted their faces black, signed a round robin, and started for Dover jail : they tore out the side of the jail, and set Hanson free. The whole region was greatly excited, but Hanson got away. The pursuit was not very vigorous, for the feeling was strong that perhaps Hanson, after all, might have had a real provocation from the Indian. The excitement gradually died out ; but Hanson had a son (about Daniel Webster's age) who was 25 f 386 EEMIXISCE^'CES OF DANIEL VTEBSTER. named for his father, and who, after his escape, began to express fears that the Indians would visit the iniquity of the father upon the son. which was their code. He said : — '*' My father has escaped jail ; the Indian says that he will have revenge upon the next of kin." He could not work or even sleep. He imagined that every noise he heard was a band of Indians comins: to take reveno-e. He was a stronsr. stal- wart fellow, but he began to lose his flesh, so that his mother and friends became alarmed for him. At last he came to the conclusion that he would go and deliver himself up to the Indians. He said nothing of his purpose until he had resolved upon it. Then he told his mother, and started for the Indian camp, forty or fifty miles distant. He arrived there, and presenting himseh to the chief, said : — | '•' I am the son of John Hanson, who slew your chief. My father has escaped, and I have come to offer mvself in his stead. You mav take me and do what you please with me." This touched the macrnanimitv of the Indians, and they asked him how he would like to be adopted into their tribe. He rephed that, if that was their wish, nothing would please him more. So they made an Indian of him : he put on the Indian costume, married a squaw, and was made a chief of the tribe ; and he lived and died among the Indians. Mr. Webster related this incident in the follow- insr connection. He said : — PERSONAL TRAITS. 387 " In 1840, (luring the Whig campaign, I went to New Hampshire to make a speech. It was a hot day in September ; people had come from far and near, in the excitement of the time, to attend the meet- ing. After the speaking was over, a plain, farmer- Hke person came upon the stand and wished to be introduced to me. " ' I don't suppose, Mr. Webster,' said he, ' that you remember Jane Hanson.' I stopped for an instant, and then said : — " ' Yes, I do : what of her ? " ' I am her husband, and we live in Bradford, on the opposite side of the river. I have come up here to see you ; my wife says that she would give one of our best cows to see you ! ' " ' Well,' I replied, ' she shall see me for less than the price of a cow ; for I will go and see her.' " It was my intention to return to Hanover that night with Colonel Brewster; so we drove down on the other side of the river, a mile or two out of the way, to see the Hansons; and when we got there we found that the farmer had preceded us. There I saw one whom I remembered only as a girl of fourteen or fifteen, now a nice, respectable matron, with her children about her ; the wife of a very well-to-do farmer. Our meeting brought up the reminiscences of early days, and she talked of them with tears in her eyes. I inquired about John, and she said she had heard from him, but had never seen him. All they knew of him was that he lived among the Indians, and was himself an Indian. 388 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. "The history of that border," added Mr. Webster, " for thirty or forty years, is filled with incidents of that kind ; with hardships, heroism, self-denial, and the great fortitude with which that race of almost martyrs bore their rude civilization, — planting those institutions from which we are now deriving the benefit, without, as I frequently think, feeling and acknowledging the obligations we owe to them." When Mr. Webster was in England, he dined on one occasion with the Archbishop (Howell) of Canterbury. There were about twenty guests present ; and after the cloth had been removed the English custom of after-dinner speech-making, which was rather novel to Mr. Webster, was fol- lowed. It was customary, if a member of the Government was present, to call him out by drink- ing his health, and for him to acknowledge the compliment in a speech. Much to Mr. Webster's surprise, — for he did not suppose there was to be any thing of that kind, — an eminent lawyer, a relative of the Archbishop, but a man of whom he had never heard, rose and made some remarks, prefacing his speech by stating that they had for a guest a distinguished gentleman from America. In closing, he said : — " I would propose, my lords and gentlemen, the health of Mr. Webster, a member of the Upper Senate of New York." Mr. Webster's comment on this was that it was ludicrous ; and he added, that he had often thought that if any prominent American, occupying a simi- I PERSONAL TRAITS. 389 lar position in society and having had the same opportunities of knowledge, should make such a blunder and show such total ignorance of the Eng- lish government and its forms, it would subject hnn to very marked contempt and ridicule at home. Ignorance like this, in high places, im- pressed him very much while in England. He had occasion to explain to a great many English gentlemen, and even eminent politicians, the the- ory and practice of the American system. In the course of conversation they would say, — " You are a Senator of the United States ? " " Yes, sir." " Well, where, — in Massachusetts ? " They did not seem to understand our political distinctions ; and he had to explain to his question- ers the nature of those distinctions. He would say that the States were represented in the general government, each State being entitled to two Sen- ators, and to Representatives according to their population. As soon as the Englishmen began to understand these distinctions, they manifested their surprise, and many of them received his instruc- tions with great delight. Some went so far as to declare that ours must be " a miracle of govern- ment." Mr. Webster said that about the time he was going abroad a pamphlet had been published, giving the statistics of the productions of Mas- sachusetts, — her manufactures, commerce, and agriculture. It had been compiled under the administration of Governor Everett, and at hi? 390 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. suggestion. When Mr. Webster started for Eu- rope, he put a few copies of this pamphlet into his trunk, thinking they might serve to answer questions and to interest himself. On one occa- sion, an English nobleman asked him, — " Tell me what constitutes the wealth and labor of the State in which you live ; what do the peo- ple do ? " Mr. Webster described the population, and said that he would send him a little pamj)hlet that would answer all his questions. The nobleman thanked him, and the next day Mr. Webster ful- filled his promise. On meeting him a short time afterwards at a dinner party, the nobleman imme- diately acknowledged the receipt of the pamphlet, and remarked that he had been very much sur- prised at the facts contained in it. " Does your State borrow money in our mar- ket ? " asked he. Mr. Webster told him that he believed it did. " Well," returned the nobleman, " I am going to order my banker to invest from ten to twenty thousand pounds in your securities. You are a busy set of bees in Massachusetts. The bonds of such a State must be good." Mr. Webster was fond of moralizing upon the period in which he lived, and often talked of the rapid progress which civilization had made and was making in this century. His views of the race and its destinies were always cheerful; he seldom looked upon the dark side of things. He was profoundly interested in his kind. Once, in '^ fERSONAL TRAITS. 391 feptiaking of the age in which he lived, he said to me : — '' I think our Hnes have fallen in pleasant places, and in a pleasant period of the world's history. I have reflected much on the past and on the future, in connection with events that are passing before our eyes: and I am rather inclined to the belief — though all generations of men think they are wiser than those w^io have preceded them — that, for discovery, this age has certainly surpassed every other of which history renders us an account. And I doubt whether any century in the future will be so prolific in discoveries beneficial to the race as ours has been. Take steam, as applied to the advancement of civilization and the progress of human society, — that one discovery has dis- tinguished this age from all others. I remember well when Fulton was seeking aid from Congress, and sent his boat up to Albany propelled by steam. He was looked upon by those whose influence he sought as a wild visionary, an enthusiast ; as a man better fitted for an insane asylum than for practical life. Very scientific men demonstrated that it was impossible to apply steam to the purpose of navi- gation, — that the amount of fuel required would alone prevent it. Now, think of it ! merchant ves- sels are having more or less steam applied to their navigation, Think of steam as applied to the rail- road, and the changes it has wrought in society ! Then take the discovery of ether, — an event the full benefits of which we can hardly realize as yet. Just think of the human suffering prevented by that 392 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. discovery ! think of the pain of amputations and other operations prevented in hospitals ! But the miracle of miracles is the telegraph. Whatever improvements may be made in the instruments of telegraphic transmission, the agent itself cannot be improved. It is impossible, because it is as quick as thought. Steam, electricity, ether, and the ten thousand things that have grown from them, — think of it ! What age has produced any thing hke it, for the advancement of human society and the amelioration of human suffering ? I think that we who live in this nineteenth century have, as far as the development of these great discoveries goes, the advantage over all who have preceded us ; and I think we shall have the ad- vantage over the generations that are to follow. That is my opinion ; and I thank God that it has pleased Him to assign my life to just this age of the world." CHAPTER XI. RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. Mr. Webster thought often and profoundly on rehgious subjects. He had the most devout rev- erence for the Holy Scriptures, and was long in the habit of reading them every day. He often spoke of the delight tlieir perusal gave him, espe- cially the Gospels. He searched himself ; and, while he had doubts and fears in regard to his own spiritual state, his conviction of the truth of the leading Christian doctrines was full and un- questioning. Throughout his life, this seems to have been the condition of his mind on religious subjects. The early lessons of piety taught by his revered mother were not forgotten to the end of his days. He always believed in a reverential keeping of the Sabbath. He wrote thus to Charles W. Ridgeley, secretary of a society organized to promote its better observance : — " The longer I live, the more highly do I esti- mate the importance of a proper observance of the Christian Sabbath, and the more grateful do I feel towards those who take pains to impress a sense of this importance on the community. The 394 REMIMSCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. Lord's Day is the day on which the gospel is preached. It is the day of public worship through- out the Christian world ; and, although we live in a reading age and in a reading community, yet the preaching of the gospel is the human agency which has been and still is most efficaciously em- ployed for the spiritual good of men. That the poor had the gospel preached to, them was an evi- dence of His mission which the Author of Chris- tianity himself proclaimed ; and to the public worship of the Deity, and to the preaching of the gospel, the observance of the Sabbath is obviously essential." Many anecdotes and narratives have been given, illustrating Mr. Webster's devotional spirit, his rev- erence for all things sacred, and his frequent and serious contemplation of religious subjects. A venerable Presbyterian clergyman, who knew Mr. Webster in the early period of his public career, thus testifies to his religious character : — *• I was a student in Mr. Webster's office, in Portsmouth, during his second term in the lower House of Congress. He was then a communicant in the Presbyterian Church, of which Rev. J. W. Putnam was pastor. My own mind was there deeply awakened to the subject of religion. I united with the same church, and went for the first time to the communion-table in company with my esteemed preceptor. These important events in my own life led me to frequent conversations with Mr. Webster on the subject of religion as well as of law. The result was, I relinquished the RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 395 study of the law, with his approval and advice, for the study of theology. " Mr. Webster was a man of deep religious feel- ing. He united with the church of the Rev. Thomas Worcester, in Salisbury, his native town, early after he entered on the practice of the law ; and Mr. Worcester has told me that he then gave pleasing evidence of the sincerity and reality of his piety. During my residence in his office, the controversy was in progress between Doctors Worcester and Channing on the subject of the Trinity. The pamphlets of these distinguished theologians were received as they successively issued from the press, and were read by us to- gether. Mr. Webster said that Dr. Worcester had 'not only the truth, but the argument.' " Mr. Webster was a Bible student and a thorough theologian. His doctrinal views were those which naturally result from taking the sovereignty and infinite perfections of God as a stand-point, and in- vestisratino; truth under the instructions of the Bible, implicitly received as a divine revelation to instruct our ignorance and enlighten our darkness. I never heard him conduct an argument on reli- gious doctrine. I have often heard him state his convictions, and leave others to dispute. He was tolerant to those who differed from him, and expressed httle preference for forms of worship or church order. Abstruse reasonings in the pulpit always gave him uneasiness ; but plain, pungent preaching, which arraigned the sinner as guilty before a holy God and a holy law, always 396 REMmiSCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. gained his commendation. His closing scene of life was such as I always expected. " After a long life of unsurpassed labor in his profession and in politics, as he felt the end ap- proaching, he first disposed of his official business, then minutely dictated his will, and then fell back on his religious hopes, — giving his last hours to religion, as to a familiar subject, long cherished. He was a patriot : he was so to the last. He was a father: he blessed his family. But these and all other subjects were opportunely disposed of, and his closing thoughts were, as we should have wished them to be, as we shall wish ours to be, of God in Christ, and of immortality." In early life, as stated in the foregoing, Mr. Webster united with the Congregational Church in Sahsbury. On removing to Portsmouth, he took a letter from this church to Dr. Buckminster's, also Congregationalist. When he went to Boston, he carried a letter to the Brattle Street Church. This society he never officially left. He often worshipped at other churches, especially at Epis- copal churches ; but at Marshfield usually attended the Congregationalist Church. A writer says of Mr. Webster, that he " seems to have been what is called an ' Orthodox man, though with an enlarged liberality in his mode of thinking and acting, — making the Bible, and not any denominational creed, his rule of faith and practice." Mr. Ely, of Rochester, in whose house Mr. Webster was paying a visit in September, 1848, RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 397 thus relates a conversation which he then had with tlie great statesman on various subjects, inckiding religion : — " One evening, Mr. Webster, Mr. Hall, Mrs. Ely, and myself, were in the parlor alone. Mr. Webster commenced conversation in a most pleasant man- ner, narrating many incidents of his early days. Among others, he mentioned that from infancy to manhood his health was extremely frail and feeble. No one of his friends expected him to live long. He had a perfectly distinct recollection, when very young, of having been a long time sick, and re- membered that while in this state his father one day, entering the room with him in his arms, said to his mother, ' We must give him up ; we never can raise this child.' His mother made no reply ; but, rising, took him from his father's arms, and her tears fell fast upon his face as she pressed him to her bosom. " The conversation then turned upon his early family friends, for whom he seemed to have enter- tained the most tender affection. The subject of religion next occupied him. " He stated the fact of his having united with a Congregational church when not far from twenty years of age. He dwelt upon the importance of earnest piety on the part of the clergy, and also of greater attention to oratory and the arrange- ment of discourses. He regretted that so large a portion of them should be apparently indifferent to a subject so important as the manner of present- ing the truth of God's word. He spoke of his 398 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. early and constant habit of reading the Scriptures, and enlarged upon the beauty and sublimity of the Gospels. It was to him a matter of astonishment that any enlightened mind could doubt their divine authority. He said he read them with increasing interest, and deemed them perfect models of sim- ple beauty. No one, he remarked, had a higher estimate than himself of the power of the gospel to transform the character. He mentioned the sudden death of a number of eminent men with whom he had been associated, — who, like himself, had been almost wholly engrossed in public affairs ; and remarked that they seldom lived beyond the age of seventy-two years. He himself, he said, could not expect to survive that period. His mind seemed to be impressed with the idea that he should die suddenly, probably while engaged in public speaking." The following testimony to his bearing in church, and the conspicuous traits of his religious character, was given soon after his death, by one who had ample opportunity to observe him in this phase of his daily life : — " Mr. Webster's appearance at church was striking. He entered the house of God with an apparent rev- erence, which is quite uncommon. He walked up the aisle to his pew in the church at Marsh field, as if he trod a hallowed floor. As he sat, his mind seemed impressed with the sacredness of the day, the place, and the spiritual themes that pressed upon him. He was fond of sacred music, and as the Ooir proceeded with this interesting part of RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 309 divine worship, he frequently joined it witli his deep bass. During the service of prayei he stood up with the minister and congregation, after the manner of our Pilgrim Fathers, with great devout- ness of manner. " As the text was announced, it was his custom to look it out in a small polyglot Bible that was always before him, with the purpose, seemingly, of attending to the text with its connection. This being done, he was a devout and attentive hearer of the discourse. Though it would seem to be a difficult duty to preach before such a man as Dan- iel Webster, yet to the preacher who had made the best preparation he could, and who was in earnest in presenting the great themes of the gospel, it was an agreeable duty, for such a preacher always had the sympathy and earnest attention of his greatest hearer. " His minister, on one Sabbath, preached two ser- mons on the immortality of the soul, from words in Job, — a book that Mr. Webster admired and studied, both for its food for the intellect and the heart. The words were, ' If a man die shall he live again ? ' Mrs. Webster and friends were present in the morning. In the afternoon, Mr. Webster was in his place, though his health was but indifferent. He seemed specially interested in that particular subject ; and from conversations since, and from that remarkable discourse he gave upon it in his dying chamber, it is evident he re- flected upon it much, and with great interest. Dur- ing the same year, 1849, I believe, the words of 400 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. the text on another occasion, were those of Pilate to JesuSj ' What is truth ? ' From the insincerity and indifference of Pilate in proposing this ques- tion, it was attempted to show the manner and spirit that become religious inquirers, who would come to a saving knowledge of the truth. "Mr. Webster was all attention from the an- nouncement of the text, and kept his great black eyes fixed upon the speaker until he closed his discourse. Such piercing eyes were seldom, if ever, fixed upon a preacher in ancient or modern times ; and one having felt their power can readily believe the anecdote that was told by the late Dr. Codman, of Dorchester, of a young minister fresh from Andover, who, under the influence of those same eyes, was struck dumb in the midst of his discourse and sank into his seat, leaving the doc- tor, who was more accustomed to face that distin- guished hearer, to finish the discourse. "Mr. Webster was not a critical hearer of ser- mons, in the sense of being fastidious in reference to language and manner. He was pleased with simphcity, devoutness, and earnestness in a minis- ter of holy things, as becoming the man and becom- ing the theme. Any levity in the pulpit he could not brook. He wished to be instructed by a ser- mon J but, above all, he wished to be made to feel as a sinner, accountable to his God. In his own words, that have come to be immortal, he wished preaching to come home to him ' as a personal matter.' As an illustration of this, while Mr. Webster was on a summer visit to his farm in RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 401 Franklin, N. H., Rev. Mr. Knight, at that time pas- tor of the Congregational Church in that place, took occasion in the course of a sermon, in the presence of Mr. Webster, to address some words of exhortation adapted to men in public life and called to high places, evidently alluding to his dis- tinguished hearer and occasional parishioner. Mr. Webster received the gospel message with all the kindness with which it fell from the lips of this simple-hearted and pious country clergyman ; and, at the close of the service, waited until he descended from the pulpit, and then took him by the hand and thanked him for his fidelity to his Master and to him. " All unnatural display in the pulpit, and exhi- bitions of quasi greatness, were displeasing to Mr. Webster. He preferred goodness rather than great- ness, while affected greatness was painful to him. A clergyman in a town not very remote from Marsh- field wrote what he fancied to be a great sermon, just the one to preach before Daniel Webster. Not long after, he arranged an exchange with the pastor of the First Church in Marshfield, and in due time made his appearance in the pulpit before the great man to whom he had come to preach if not to pray. He delivered his great discourse, accompanied with violent beating of the air. The mountain labored, but not even a church mouse was produced, though several, doubtless, were frightened away. " The preacher still supposed he had made a great effort, and doubtless he had. Mr. Webster not re- maining to compliment his sermon at the close of the service, early on Monday morning he hast- 26 402 llEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. ened to Ms mansion, two miles distant, to receive his praises, not doubting but that they would be showered upon him, with an apology for not re- turnincr his thanks sooner. Mr. Webster received him, acccording to the minister's account of the interview, rather ceremoniously, and treated him somewhat cooll3^ He made no allusion to the dis- course. The clergyman was uneasy, and soon left for home, with a feeling, as his profession would say, decidedly Mondayish, and ever after contended that Daniel Webster could not appreciate a great sermon. " It was generally admitted before the death of Mr. Webster that he was the foremost lawyer, statesman, diplomatist, and orator in the land. But the truth is, Daniel Webster, in the judgment of those w^ho knew him best, was as good as he was great. Nor was he a mere theorist in religion. He was a practical Christian, eminently thought- ful upon God, upon His works, and His word ; and the clergyman wdiose preaching and life met the approval of his judgment and conscience might feel quite sure that he was doing the work of his Master." A gentleman who was present on one occasion at a dinner party at the Astor House, given by Mr. Webster to a few of his New York friends, re- lates an incident which took place at the table, in which Mr. Webster earnestly avowed his deep reli- gious convictions. It was when he was Secretary of State in Mr. Fillmore's cabinet. " There were twenty or so at the table. Mr. RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 403 Webster seemed wearied by his journey, and speaking but little, if at all, plunged into a dark- some sort of reverie, not well calculated to enliven his friends. This at length became so apparent, and the situation of all so unpleasant, that one of the company urged upon a distinguished man present, a warm friend of Mr. Webster, to get him into conversation. It was thought he only needed to be jogged, to become as lively as they wished. " This friend consented, and spoke to Mr. Web- ster, asking him some question that in ordinary circumstances and with ordinary men would have led to conversation ; but it failed in the present case. The dark Secretary of State merely raised his head and answered simply, and crept into his cave again. " Again the gentleman, frightened by his failure, was urged to renew the attempt to draw him out. He summoned courage and said to Mr. Webster : " ' Mr. Webster, I want you to tell me what was the most important thought that ever occupied your mind.' " Here was a thumper for him, and so everybody thought at the table. Mr. Webster slowly passed his hand over his forehead, and in a low tone said to a friend near him : — " ' Is there any one here who does not know me?' " ' No sir, they all know you — are aU your friends.' " Then he looked over the table, and you may 404 llEMIXISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER well imagine how the tones of his voice would sound upon such an occasion, giving answer to such a question. '"^ The most important thought that ever occu- pied my mind,' said he, ' was that of my individ- ual responsibility to God ! ' — upon which, for twenty minutes, he spoke to them, and when he had finished he rose from the table and retired to his room. The rest of the company, without a word, went into an adjoining parlor, and when they had gathered there some of them exclaimed, ' Who ever heard any thing like that ? ' What Mr. Webster said in advocacy of his sublime thought I do not know; no one ever repeated it, and 1 presume no one ever will." In the composition and delivery of sermons, Mr. Webster loved to see (as has been remarked) sim- plicity and directness. Many clergymen supposed that if Mr. Webster were listening they ought to be learned, profound, and argumentative ; but they utterly mistook his taste in this respect. He pre- ferred those sermons which appealed most directly to the conscience of the individual, and avoided topics of controversy. For a political sermon he had no relish, even when it accorded with his own views. After listening to an elaborate discourse on the Revolutionary movements in Europe, in 1848, based on the text : " I will overturn, overturn, overturn it; and it shall be no more, until lie come, whose right it is ; and I will give it Him," he went home quite disquieted. He talked to his family and to a friend who was present of the folly RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 405 of attempting to interpret prophecy by passing events. " In the first place," he observed, " the clergy- man has not a sufficient knowledge of European politics to explain intelligently the causes or re- sults of existing commotions. Secondly, the events are too near us, and exert too much influence over our sympathies, for us to determine what the divine purpose is in respect to them. Thirdly, the pulpit is not the proper place for such speculations. I do not," added he, " go to church to learn history ; but to be reminded of duty." It happened to Mr. Webster once, to attend divine service in a quiet country village. The clergyman was a simple-hearted, pious old man. After the introductory exercises, he rose and named his text ; and, with the utmost simplicity and earn- estness, said : — "My friends, we can die but once;" then he paused. " Frigid and weak as these words might seem at f.rst," said Mr. Webster, " they were to me among ' the most impressive and awakening I ever heard. I never felt so sensibly that I must die at all, as when that devout old man told me I could ' die but once ! ' " Mr. Webster exceedingly liked the society of intelligent clergymen. He always welcomed them to his house, and tried to make their visits pleasant. One summer when I boarded in Medford, Mr. Web- ster came out to dine with me ; and after dinner, in the evening, I drove him to town in my gig. As we were about to leave, I said : — 406 REMINISCE]^ CES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. " By the way, there is a very intelhgent clergy* man here, whom you perhaps know by reputation, and who in conversation has spoken of you with great respect and admiration, — Dr. WiUiam Adams of New York. He married the daughter of Mr. Thatcher Magoun, and has come on to spend his vacation. He is a great admirer of yours." " I used to know Thatcher Magoun," he rephed, " twenty years ago ; suppose we drive up and see them." So we drove up, and found Dr. Adams there. We spent a pleasant half hour with them, and, in part- ing, Mr. Webster told Dr. Adams that he should be very much delighted to see him at Marshfield. Dr. Adams thanked him, and we retired. While riding in, our conversation turned upon religious topics. It was seldom that I asked him any thing about his religious views. He talked very freely about them. " Mr. Webster," said I, " you are a member of what we call the Orthodox Church ? " " Yes," replied he, " I am ; I joined the church to which my father, mother, and elder brothers and sisters belonged, in my native town, — the Orthodox Congregational Church. I remember it well now." I said : " When you came to Boston, you went to the Unitarian Church, and they now speak of you as a Unitarian." " I am not a Unitarian," he replied. " I should be regarded as perhaps rather liberal in my views ; but if I had, with my experience of life, and a good deal of reflection, to choose a church and form of RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 407 worship, I do not think I wouki change my church '' relations. The organization is simple, and still has enough of form. It imposes suitable restraints, but not enough to make the matter so formal as to substitute the thinsr sio-nifving; for the thino; it- self. When I came to Boston, many of my friends went to Brattle Street Church. Buckminster was its minister, one of whose brothers was my precep- tor at Exeter. Then, the divisions were not so marked as now. Dr. Codman would preach in Brattle Street Church, and Dr. Little at the Old South. Afterwards, the division took place, but I never felt it worth while to change. I was not here a great deal ; and at Marshfield I always attended the Orthodox Church, which I continue to do." A few days after Mr. Webster's interview with Dr. Adams at Medford, the doctor came to me and said he was going to pay a visit in Duxbury ; and added : " If I thought Mr. Webster was sincere in asking me to Marshfield, I would go down there and see him." " He was perfectly sincere," I replied, " and would be delighted to see you." Dr. Adams said he did not feel quite well enough acquainted with him to visit his house ; yet if I thought he was really in earnest, he should ven- ture. I told him to go by all means ; Mr. Webster would certainly make him welcome. A few days after that he went down to Duxbury, and his host carried him one morning over to Marshfield. Mr. Webster was at home and was glad to see him. Dr. 408 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. Adams stayed through the day, Mr. Webster insist- ing upon his remaining ; and he thought it was one of the most dehghtful days in his life. Their friendship from that time was one of great inti- macy. Mr. Webster conceived a liigh admiration for Dr. Adams, who was a very accomplished and able man. In February, 1851, Mr. Webster went to New York, to deliver an address before the Historical Society. As the 22d of February came on Sunday, the celebration was put off till Monday ; and, on Sunday, Dr. Adams preached a sermon before the Youno: Men's Christian Association. There were fifty clergymen in the house, as well as many emi- nent gentlemen in civil life ; and Mr. Webster and myself were present by invitation. The text was " The sword of the Lord and of Gideon," and upon it was founded a very beautiful address, — a sort of eulogy on Washington. As we left the church, Mr. Webster spoke of it very highly. He referred to Dr. Adams as a man of high attainments, a scholar and Christian gentleman. Soon after Mr. Webster had delivered his 7th of March speech, the pulpits of the land began preach- ing on one side or the other of the Compromise Measures, Many of the sermons were published. I was in Washington that winter ; and some of these discourses used to reach Mr. Webster through the mail nearly every day, being sent by their authors. His habit was to ask me to open his pamphlets, and see what they were about. I would open them, read the names of the authors, and occasionally au RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 409 extract. He usually paid but little attention, per- haps saying that they did not amount to mucli, or something of that kind. Finally, I came to one by Dr. Adams. " Ah ! " exclaimed he, " that will be good. To-night we will read that." So that even- ing, we being alone, I read it aloud to Mr. and Mrs. Webster. It was a conservative, Christian, and dignified discourse ; and Mr. Webster was constantly ejaculating through the whole of it, " Excellent ! " When I had read it through, he said : " That is a most beautiful discourse ; if the pulpits of America were all occupied by such men as that, — that great conservative influence, the pul- pit, — this Government and its institutions would last for ever. That is admirable. I will write to Dr. Adams and thank him for it, if I never do another thing." He accordingly wrote a letter to Dr. Adams, which the latter told me afterwards he considered one of the most precious treasures he could leave to his children. Mr. Webster had a strong affection for the devo- tional songs of Dr. Watts. He learned most of them by heart in boyhood, and repeated them and sung them, alone and in company, in manhood. A friend called on him one Sabbath evening, in New York. Having observed him at church during the day, the friend inquired how he had been pleased with the sermon. Mr. Webster replied that he had had his thoughts diverted from the discourse by opening the hymn-book and reading a stanza of that beautiful hymn of Watts, commencing — " Welcome, sweet day of rest," 410 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. and which had been altered as follows : — " My willing soul would stay In such a frame as this, Till called to rise and soar away To everlasting bliss." He was so vexed by the audacity of the compiler, who had mutilated the exquisite harmony of the original, and destroyed the beautiful allusion to the dying swan, that he could not enjoy the services. He then repeated, with evident feeling, the stanza as Watts wrote it : — " My willing soul would stay In such a frame as this, And sit and sing herself away To everlasting bliss." The year before Mr. Webster died, in the au- tumn of 1851, I was spending a few weeks with him at his place in Franklin. One pleasant morn- ing he said to me : — "I am going to take a drive up to Andover, and I want you to go with me." Andover was about ten miles from his place in Franklin. He added : — " We can start after breakfast, and it will take us an hour and a half or two hours to go. We shall only want to stay there an hour or so, and we will return in time for dinner. When we get into the wagon I will tell you whom I am going to see." The horse was harnessed, and we started off. As we rode along, Mr. Webster had a great many reminiscences called to mind by different objects fJELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 411 that we passed. Such a man used to live here, he would say, and such a man lived in such a house, and there I remember such a man lived ; and here he used himself to Hve when a boy, and there he used to pitch quoits, and in another place he used to play with John Holden's boys. One incident to which Mr. Webster called my attention, connected with the early days of the Kevolution, I must not omit to mention. A few rods from the bank of the river along which we were riding was a small tuft of an island, upon which stood a solitary tree. Mr. Webster pointed out this spot, and called my attention to the tree standing there alone. " That tree," said he, " used to be a favorite mark in the target-practice of the band of minute men, who, when they went down from New Hamp- shire and took part in the battle of Bunker Hill, chose my father as their captain. These men, — '. many of them trained in the hard experiences of frontier life, and having a firm reliance upon their trusty rifles, — of course had good guns, and in- deed took no little pride in them and in their skill in handling them. This tree was a target for , them ; and here they would come and exercise their skill. Being at long distance, the thing to be done was to hit the body of the tree itself; and the way in which they determined whether , the tree was hit was rather a novel one. If the bullet did not strike the tree it would fall into the water beyond the tree, and the splash where it struck the water would be readily noticed ; but. if 412 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. there was no disturbance of the surface of tlie water beyond the tree, it was taken for granted that the ball had struck the tree itself. My father used to describe to me these matches among the frontier marksmen ; and he would say that when his turn came to try his hand with the others, he never failed of being set down as having hit the tree. These men were, of course, all under the command of my father whenever they were on duty in the field ; but here, in the neighborhood of their homes, they were all on the same footing, and one was just as good as another. My father always used to take part in these competitive tests. And, as there never was any splash in the water after his shot, he got the credit of being the best marksman among them all. " ' How did you manage to do it ?' I once asked him. " ' Oh, simply enough,' he replied, with a hearty laugh as he added : ' The fact is, I never used to put any bullet into my gun ! ' " After Mr. Webster had recounted various pleas- ing reminiscences of this kind, he said : — " Now I will tell you the object of this trip to- day. I am going to see a man by the name of Colby. John Colby is a brother-in-law ^f mine. He married my oldest half-sister, and was, of course, a good many years older than myself, — as she was. I have not seen him for forty-five years, as nearly as I can recollect. My sister, his wife, has been dead many, many years ; and any interest I may have had in John Colby has all died out : but RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 413 I have learned some particulars about his recent life that interest me very much, and I am going to see him. I will tell you something about him. When I was a lad at home, on the farm, John Colby was a smart, driving, trading, swearing yeo- man, money-loving and money-getting. In that rather rude period, when there were not many distinctions in society, when one man was about as good as another, and when there were very few educated persons, he was considered a very smart, active man. I remember him, however, with a sort of terror and shudder. He would pick me up when I was a little fellow, throw me astride of a horse bare back, and send the horse to the brook. The horse would gallop, and I had to hold on to his mane to keep from being pitched into the river. Colby was a reckless, wild, harum-scarum, dare-devil sort of a fellow. Well, John Colby married my oldest half- sister. She was a religious, good woman ; but beaux were not plenty, and John Colby was a fine- looking man. His personal habits were good enough, laying aside his recklessness ; he was not a drink- ing man, and he was, as the world goes, a thrifty man. Any of the girls in town would have married John Colby. After he married my sister, I went away to college, and lost sight of him. Finally, he went up to Andover and bought a farm ; and the only recollection I have about him after that is, that he was called, I think, the wickedest man in the neighborhood, so far as swearing and impiety ■ went. I used to wonder how my sister could marry so profane a man as John Colby. I think 414 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. she herself was very much shocked ; and I know her father was, who was a reUgious man. And still Colby was considered ' a good catch.' I came home from college during vacation, and used to hear of him occasionally ; but after a few years, — perhaps five or six years, — my sister died, and then, of course, all the interest that any of us had in John Colby pretty much ceased. I believe she left a child, — I think a daughter, — who grew up and was married, and also left a child. Now I will give you the reason why I am to-day going up to see this John Colby. I have been told by persons who know, that, within a few years, he has become a convert to the Christian rehgion, and has met with that mysterious change which we call a change of heart ; in other words, he has become a constant, praying Christian. This has given me a very strong desire to have a personal interview with him, and to hear with my own ears his account of this change. For, humanly speaking, I should have said that his was about as hopeless a case for conversion as I could well conceive. He won't know me, and I shall not know him ; and I don't intend to make myself known at first." We drove on, and reached the village, — a lit- tle, quiet place, one street running through it, a few houses scattered along here and there, with a country store, a tavern, and a post-office. As we drove into this quiet, peaceable little hamlet, at midday, with hardly a sign of life noticeable, Mr. Webster accosted a lad in the street, and asked where John Colby lived. KELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 415 " That is John Colby's house," Scoid he, pointing to a very comfortable two-story house, with a green lawn running down to the road. We drove along towards it, and a little before we reached it, mak- ing our horse secure, we left the wagon and pro- ceeded to the house on foot. Instead of steps leading to it, there were little flagstones laid in front of the door ; and you could pass right into the house without having to step up. The door was open. There was no occasion to knock, be- cause, as we approached the door, the inmates of the room could see us. Sitting in the middle of that room was a striking figure, who proved to be John Colby. He sat facing the door, in a very comfortably furnished farm-house room, with a httle table, or what would perhaps be called a light- stand, before him. Upon it was a large, old-fash- ioned Scott's Family Bible, in very large print, and of course a heavy volume. It lay open and he had evidently been reading it attentively. As we entered, he took oE his spectacles and laid them upon the page of the book, and looked up at us as w^e approached, Mr. Webster in front. He was a man, I should think, over six feet in height, and he retained in a wonderful degree his erect and manly form, although he was eighty five or six years old. His frame was that of a once powerful, athletic man. His head was covered with very heavy, thick, bushy hair, and it was M'hite as wool, which added very much to the picturesqueness of his appearance. As I looked in at the door, I thought I never saw a more 416 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. striking figure. He straightened himself up, but said nothing until just as we appeared at the door, when he greeted us with, — " Walk in, gentlemen." He then spoke to his grandchild to give us some chairs. The meeting was, I saw, a little awkward, and he looked very sharply at us, as much as to say, " You are here, but for what I don't know : make known your business." Mr. Webster's first salutation was, — "This is Mr. Colby, Mr. John Colby, is it not?" " That is my name, sir," was the reply. "I suppose you don't know me," said Mr. Webster. " No, sir, I don't know you ; and I should like to know how you know me." "I have seen you before, Mr. Colby," replied Mr. Webster. " Seen me before ! " said he ; " pray, when and where ? " " Have you no recollection of me ? " asked Mr. Webster. "No, sir, not the slightest; " and he looked by Mr. Webster toward me, as if trying to remember if he had seen me. Mr. Webster remarked, — " I think you never saw this gentleman before ; but you have seen me." Colby put the question again, when and where ? " You married my oldest sister," replied Mr. Webster, calling her by name. (I think it was Susannah.) RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 417 "' I married your oldest sister ! " exclaimed Col- by ; " who are you ? " " I am ' little Dan,' " was the reply. It certainly would be impossible to describe the expression of wonder, astonishment, and half-in- credulity that came over Colby's face. " You Daniel Webster ! " said he ; and he started to rise from his chair. As he did so, he stammered out some words of surprise. " Is it possible that this is the little black lad that used to ride the horse to water ? Well, I cannot realize it ! " Mr. Webster approached him. They embraced each other ; and both wept. " Is it possible," said Mr. Colby, when the em- barrassment of the first shock of recognition was past, " that you have come up here to see me ? Is this Daniel? Why, why," said he, "I cannot be- lieve my senses. Now, sit down. I am glad, oh, I am so glad to see you, Daniel ! I never expected to see you again. I don't know what to say. I am so glad," he went on, " that my life has been spared that I might see you. Why, Daniel, I read about you, and hear about you in all ways ; sometimes 8ome members of the family come and tell us about you ; and the newspapers tell us a great deal about you, too. Your name seems to be constantly in the newspapers. They say that you are a great man, that you are a famous man ; and you can't tell how delighted I am when I hear such things. But, Daniel, the time is short, — you won't stay here long, — I want to ask you one important question. You may be a great man : are you a yood man ? Are you 118 KEMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. a Christian man ? Do you love the Lord Jesus Christ? That is the only question that is worth asking or answering. Are you a Christian ? You know, Daniel, what I have been : I have been one of the wickedest of men. Your poor sister, who is now in heaven, knows that. But the spirit of Christ and of Almighty God has come down and plucked me as a brand from the everlasting burn- ing. I am here now, a monument to his grace. Oh, Daniel, I would not give what is contained within the covers of this book for all the honors that have been conferred upon men from the crea- tion of the world until now. For what good would it do ? It is all nothing, and less than noth- ing, if you are not a Christian, if you are not repentant. If you do not love the Lord Jesus Christ, in sincerity and truth, all your worldly honors will sink to utter nothingness. Are you a Christian ? Do you love Christ ? You have not answered me." All this was said in the most earnest and even vehement manner. " John Colby," replied Mr. Webster, " you have asked me a very important question, and one which .should not be answered lightly. I intend to give you an answer, and one that is truthful, or I won't give you any. I hope that I am a Christian. I profess to be a Christian. But, while I say that, I wish to add, — and I say it with shame and con- fusion of face, — that I am not such a Christian as I wish I were. I have lived in the world, sur- rounded by its honors and its temptations ; and ] RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 419 am afraid, John Colby, that I am not so good a Christian as I ought to be. I am afraid I have not yonr faith and your hopes ; but still, I hope and trust that I am a Christian, and that the same grace which has converted you, and made you an heir of salvation, will do the same for me. I trust it • and I also trust, John Colby, — and it won't be long before our summons will come, — that we shall meet in a better world, and meet those who have gone before us, whom we knew, and who trusted in that same divine, free grace. It won't be long. You cannot tell, John Colby, how much delight it gave me to hear of your conversion. The hearing of that is what has led me here to-day. I came here to see with my own eyes, and hear with my own ears the story from a man that I know and remem- ber well. What a wicked man you used to be ! " " Daniel ! " exclaimed John Colby, " you don't remember how wicked I was; how ungrateful I was ; how unthankful I was ! I never thought of God ; I never cared for God ; I was worse than the heathen. Living in a Christian land, with the light shining all around me, and the blessings of Sabbath teachings everywhere about me, I was worse than a heathen until I was arrested by the grace of Christ, and made to see my sinfulness, and to hear the voice of my Saviour. Now I am only waiting to go home to Him, and to meet your sainted sister, my poor wife. And T w^ish, Daniel, that you might be a prayerful dn^istian, and I trust you are. Daniel," he added, with deep earn- estness of voice, " will you pray with me ? " 420 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. We knelt down, and Mr. AYebster offered a most touching and eloquent prayer. As soon as he had pronounced the " Amen," Mr. Colby followed in a most pathetic, stirring appeal to God. He prayed for the family, for me, and for everj^body. Then we rose ; and he seemed to feel a serene happi- ness in having thus joined his spirit with that of Mr. Webster in prayer. " Now," said he, " what can we give you ? I don't think we have any thing that we can give you." "Yes, you have," replied Mr. Webster; "you have something that is just what we want to eat." " What is that ? " asked Colby. " It is some bread and milk," said Mr. Webster. " I want a bowl of bread and milk for myself and ray friend." Very soon the table was set, and a white cloth spread over it; some nice bread was set upon it and some milk brought, and we sat down to the table and eat. Mr. Webster exclaimed afterward : " Didn't it taste good ? Didn't it taste like old tunes ? " The brothers-in-law soon took an affectionate leave of each other, and we left. Mr. Webster could hardly restrain his tears. When we got into the wagon he began to moralize. " I should like," said he, " to know what the enemies of religion would say to John Colby's conversion. There was a man as unlikely, hu- manly speaking, to become a Christian as any man I ever saw. He was reckless, heedless, impious; RELIGIOUS THOUGHTS AND FEELINGS. 421 never attended cliiircli, never experienced the good influence of associating with religious peoj)le. And here he has been living on in that reckless way until he has got to be an old man ; until a period of life when you naturally would not ex- pect his habits to change : and yet he has been brought into the condition in which we have seen him to-day, — a penitent, trusting, humble believer. Whatever people may say, nothing," added Mr. Webster, " can convince me that any thing short of the grace of Almighty God could make such a change as I, with my own eyes, have witnessed in the life of John Colby." When we got back to Franklin, in the evening, we met John Taylor at the door. Mr. Webster called out to liim : — " Well, John Taylor, miracles happen in these later days as well as in the days of old." " What now, squire ? " asked John Taylor. " Why, John Colby has become a Christian. If that is not a miracle, what is ? " CHAPTER XII. LAST DAYS AND DEATH. One of the causes wliicli, with little doubt, has- tened Mr. Webster's death, was the accident which befell him in the early part of May, 1852. He was one day driving from Marshfield to Plymouth with Mr. Lanman, his secretary. As the carriage was ascending a hill, the body of the vehicle fell, and they both were violently thrown out. Mr. Web- ster was thrown headlong, and involuntarily put out his hand to check the force of the blow ; and he fell upon his hand and badly crushed it. He was taken up and carried to a house near by, where he was carefully tended, until he was able to be safely removed to Marshfield. He had not recovered from this injury when he died. Mr. Webster told me something connected with this accident, which moved him so much that, as he related it, tears came into his eyes. In Kings- ton, the town in which Mr. Webster was thrown from his carriage, there lived an old gentleman named Joseph Holmes, — a peculiar, energetic man, of considerable wealth. He was popularly regarded as cold, solitary, and forbidding in disposition ; and, although Mr. Webster knew him, he had no liking LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 423 or symp.'itliy for him. When Mr. Webster was taken up senseless, and carried into the house, the people round about, very much excited by the news of the accident, gathered in groups near the door ; and, while the physician was being waited for, some of them were admitted to the room where the wounded statesman lay. Mr. Webster suddenly recovered his consciousness, and looked about him. He knew some of the people, others he did not ; but the first person his eyes rested upon was old Joseph Holmes, who was lean- ing over his bed with an expression of intense anxiety and alarm. When fully restored to his senses, Mr. Webster said : — " Mr. Holmes, how do you do ? I am glad to see you." The tears rolled down the old man's cheeks, and he turned away, saying, — " Thank God, he is safe ! " Mr. Webster said that this incident moved him very much ; for, although Mr. Holmes was a politi- cal friend, they had no special acquaintance, and it had never occurred to him that " there were any tears in those eyes." The physician who was summoned to attend Mr. Webster on this occasion has made a record of a touching incident, showing alike Mr. Webster's strong sense of gratitude and his familiarity with the Scriptures. " I was called to him in great haste as a physi- cian," he says, " he (as the messenger represented) being thrown from his carriage and nearly dead. 424 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. After making all necessary Inquiry, and he becom- ing more comfortable, the crowd dispersed and left me alone with him and his private secretary. " While I was dressing the womid on his fore- head, which was much contused and somewhat lac- erated, Mrs . D., the lady of the house, entered the door of the chamber and passed to the opposite side of the room, with seeming awe, as if fearing to approach. Mr. Webster, casting his eyes on the woman as she passed, said : — " ' Madam, how very diversified is the lot of humanity in this our world ! A certain man, pass- ing from Jerusalem to Jericho, fell among thieves and was ill-treated. A man, passing from Marsh- field to Pljmiouth, fell among a very hospitable set of people and was taken care of.' " Behold the picture ! here lay the mighty man, — his physical powers but just recovering from a shock which on any other subject would proba- bly have suspended them for ever, scarcely awake as yet to things about him ; his consciousness of outward life rising, like the rising beams of a sum- mer's morning, calm and majestic, his first utter- ance the teachings of the blessed Jesus! These teachings and precepts of his Divine Master he applies to himself, as still a passing pilgrim of earth, — ' a man passing from Jerusalem to Jericho.* '^ No man could see this picture as I saw it, without the assurance that, although ' all that is mortal of Daniel Webster is no more for ever,' he ' still lives,' not only in the hearts of his country- LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 425 men by his counsels of wisdom, but that ' mortcahty (with him) is swallowed up of life.' " Early in July, 1852, not long after the sitting of the Whig National Convention at Baltimore, which, passing Mr. Webster by, saw fit to nominate General Scott for the Presidency, I accompanied him from Washington to Boston. He said to me, one day: — " We will go this evening as far as Baltimore. That will make the journey easier, by taking a little off this end ; and then we will take the train, when it comes up from Washington in the morning." As the weather was very warm, we did as Mr. Webster proposed. At Baltimore we repaired to the hotel, and occupied the same room, which had two beds in it. Before going to bed, which he did quite early, he took some kind of a wash (perhaps bay rum) from his trunk, and bathed his limbs. Meanwhile, I sat by, reading. It seemed to me that his legs looked somewhat swollen, especially the left one ; nor did he appear to attempt to con- ceal the fact from me. He saw that I noticed it, and gave his head a significant nod, as much as to say, " You see." I went up to him and said : — " Mr. Webster, your leg is swollen." " Yes," he replied. " Were you aware of it ? " asked I. " Yes." " Well," said I, " it alarms me : does any physi- cian know it? " "No; that," he replied, ^.'' is the enemy: don't for the world name this to any human being. I 426 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. would not like to have my family distressed by such a revelation. It can do no good ; and it will come to their knowledge quite soon enough. So, say nothing on that subject." I made no mention of it. That was the first knowledge I had of his trouble ; nor did I even then fully comprehend the magnitude of the diffi- culty. He returned to Marshfield, went to Boston again, and then back to Washington, on business connected with the department, he being then Secretary of State. Remaining there a few days, he returned to Boston, and went to Marshfield again. There were by this time unmistakable evi- dences of the progress of the disease in his sys- tem. He could no longer conceal it from others, and he did not attempt to do so. He consulted Dr. Porter, a respectable country physician, one of his neighbors. Dr. Porter advised him to visit Bos- ton and consult physicians here. He followed this counsel, and came to Boston. As it was the sum- mer season, many people were away from the city, with their families. Instead of going to a hotel, he brought a servant or two with him, and went to the house of his son, Fletcher Webster, on Cedar Street. My house was on the corner of West Cedar and Chestnut Streets, so near to his son's house that we could speak across to each other. My own family were out of town, and I was not stop- ping at my house. On his arrival, he sent me a message, informing me where he was, and I at once went to him, before going out of town to where my family was stopping. He told me that he had LAST DATS AND DEATH. 427 come to Boston to stay ten or twenty days, as the case might be, for medical advice, and should send that day to Dr. Jeffries, who lived near by in Cedar Street, and consult him in regard to his disease. He did so, and I met Dr. Jeffries there wh*!n I called the next day. On the second day after his arrival at Fletcher's I received a note from him, saying that he would like to have me call, if I could conveniently do so, as he was going home to Marshfield the next morning. I was surprised on receiving such a note, because I supposed he was going to stay long enough to see if he could be benefited by skilled medical treatment. I went to see him in the evening, and he told me that the cause of his return to Marshfield was, that Colonel Perkins had that day sent him a note proposing to make him a visit at Marshfield the next day ; not knowing, of course, that he was not there. " I could not bear," said he, " to say to him that I was not at home, and thus lose his visit. He is an old, valued, and trusted friend of many years ; I have invited him many times to visit me at Marsh- field, but he has never done so ; he has now found time and inclination to come, and I want to see him at Marshfield. I have sent to Mr. Foster to let me have an easy carriage, and to drive me home." I could not but remark the great thoughtfulness which this betrayed on his part for the comfort and pleasure of others, by putting himself to this great pain and inconvenience. That was the last time he was ever in Boston. I do not recollect the 428 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. exact day of the month, but it was about the mid- dle of September. He returned to Marshfield too much exhausted and ill to see his guests that night : they had got there by rail before him. He was obliged to go immediately to his chamber. From that time he began to fail quite perceptibly from day to day ; but he still continued about his business, keeping up his correspondence through the agency of his secretary, dictating important des- patches, and carrying on the business of the State department from that sick and dying chamber. Sometime during the week or fortnight after that, T visited him again at Marshfield. It was on a Sat- urday. He was then confined to his chamber, and was under the care and treatment of the doctors. Dr. Jeffries had visited him several times, and was in consultation with Dr. Porter, who went to him daily. When Sunday morning came he said to me, — " I wish you to drive to church with Mrs. Webster." " I shall do so with great pleasure," I replied. I mentioned his wish to Mrs. Webster. She said she had no heart to go. So we stayed at home, and I informed Mr. Webster of our decision. " Well, then, my friend," said he, " I wish you and Mr. Paige to go up to the tomb." Mr. Paige was the only other person in the house, except myself and Mrs. Webster. Mr. Webster had just completed a tomb in a lot which he had set apart and deeded to the town as a bui'ying-place for ever. LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 429 Only a few days before he requested iiie to go with Mr. Paige to the tomb, he had had the remains of his family, which had been interred beneath Saint Paul's Church, removed and deposited in this new resting-place : they were of his first wife, her child and grandchild, — " all kindred blood," as he ex- pressed it. Mr. "Webster was lying in bed when he asked me to go there. " Wait until the sun is a little up," said he, " and then walk up and see what you think of it." Mr. Paige and I accordingly walked, sadly enough, across the field, about half a mile, to the site of the tomb ; and, after looking at it. we returned. When I reached the door, after perhaps an hour's absence, Mrs. Webster met me, and said that Mr. Webster was promising himself to come dowa and dine with us. " He cannot do so," she said ; " he is not able ; I pray that he may not. But he seems to be set upon it. I wish that, without saying that I have asked it, you would try and persuade him not to make the attempt; for I am afraid it will hurt him to come down." When I went into his bed-room, he was very cheerful ; he inquired about the weather, whether I had seen the tomb, and how I liked it. I re-plied that the fence had been put up, and every thing was as it should be. Then he said, sadly : — " It will get more occupants soon." He hastily turned the subject, and remarked : — 430 REMINISCP:NCES of DANIEL WEBSTEli. '^I have been studying natural history, since you went away. Here are these httle leeches : to see them you would say, What can such creatures as those be made for? But when they are applied, and have dug as they have at me, five or six of them, for two hours, to extract this vitiated blood, you see then what the purpose of the Almighty was in making them. Nothing is made in vain," he added, earnestly. " Every thing of that sort, to the thoughtful mind, makes one realize the goodness of God to his creatures. He has made every thing to contribute to the happiness and well- being of his creatures. By the way, did you see the sheep on the side of the hill, as you came along ? " " Yes," I replied, " and a very handsome flock it is." Mr. Webster, as I have said, was very fond of .sheep. " Well," remarked he, " I suppose they are car- rying their heads up pretty high now ; " and he laughed. " They begin to think, I suppose," he went on, " that nobody in Marshfield can eat mut- ton ; but one of these days, friend Harvey, we Asill make them laugh out of the other side of their mouths. We will make them sing a differ- ent song." Then, speaking of the cook, he added : — " Monica is roasting as nice a leg of mutton as was ever put upon a man's table. It was ripe to-day. It is the ninth day since it was slaugh- tered, and it has hung in a place where it has kept LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 431 all its juices, and arrived at just the right condition. I have ordered it to be cooked. Friend, it is for your dinner ; and I am going down to dine with you to-day oft" that mutton." " It would give us great pleasure to see you down to dinner," said 1 ; " but I suppose you are joking." " I never was more in earnest in my life — never," he answered. " But," said I, " pray, Mr. Webster, wouldn't it be injurious to you? Wouldn't you suffer from such an effort?" " I am coming to dine with you to-day, suffer or no suffer." I saw there was nothing further to be said. By that time it was one o'clock, or quarter past. "I will excuse you," said he, "and ask you to call Wilham Bean." Bean, the valet, was called, and began the pro- cess of shaving and dressing his master. I left the room, and went down and told Mrs. Webster that persuasion in that quarter w^as useless ; that he had made up his mind to try it. I think that Bean was two hours in making him ready. He shaved him, bathed him, and dressed him. As the time for dinner approached, — three o'clock wan the hour for the Sunday dinner, — Mrs. Webster left the library where Mr. Paige and myself were, went to his room, and came back and reported. " He is making a desperate effort to come," she said ; " I dread his doing so, but there is nothing to be said." 432 RERTIXISCENCIES OF I^JANIEL WKBSTKH. At fifteen or twenty minutes before three, the library door being ajar, I heard a movement, which soon became a tramping down the broad stair- way into the hall. I immediately left my seat and went into what was called the music-room, towards the stairs. Just there I met him. He was leaning heavily on Bean's arm ; and it was then that the full force and gravity of his sick ness struck my eye ; for when in bed he did not seem seHously ill. He was dressed as carefully and elegantly as I ever saw him : he was always very particular about his dress. He had on a blue coat, buff vest, black pantaloons, white cravat, and collar turned down. He passed through the door of the music-room, connecting it with the hall. As soon as he saw me enter from the other side of the room, he stopped, straightened up to his full height, and paused. One of his beautiful smiles came over his face, and he said : — " Now, William, I will dispense with you ; you can leave me." I immediately approached, when he took both my hands, and kissed me on the cheek. " Now, then, if you will give me your arm, we will proceed," said he. He took my arm, and, at a very slow and deliber- ate pace, we crossed the music-room and entered the library, which was a large and elegant apartment. There was a little fire in the grate. Meanwhile, Mrs. Webster, in her thoughtful attention, believ- ing that he would find himself unable to sit at the table, had put a pillow on the very broad sofa. LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 433 movei back the library chair from where it usually stood, and claused the sofa to be put in its place. As we came along to the sofa, she said, — " Here is a pillow for you, my dear, to lie down." He straightened up, looked at the pillow, and then at me. " I don't want any pillow," he said ; " I came down here to dine, not to go to bed. I came down here to dine with my friends." Speaking to the servant, he added, " Roll back the sofa ; replace the chair." The chair was a large library, morocco chair. His order was obeyed. To get into the chair he had to turn around ; and, leaning heavily upon my arm until he got quite opposite, he sank heavily into it, and leaned his head back, completely exhausted, — without, apparently, having strength enough to reach his hand out to mine. He pointed to the end of the sofa, and I sat down ; he then held his hand out, and I grasped it. He said nothing for perhaps a minute. Then he looked at his wife, at Mr. Paige, and at me. He closed his eyes, and threw his head back ; then he looked at us again " This, said he, " is better than all the medicine of all the doctors, — the countenances of one's friends ! What is so consoling ? What can give such comfort to a sick man as the countenances of his friends ? " He ceased speaking. We sat in silence. Just then the servant came in and announced to Mrs. Webster that dinner was ready. I immediately 28 434 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. rose, as did Mr. Webster and Mr. Paige. We stood around him, ready to assist him to the table. He looked again from one to the other, as if a little irresolute. At last, with a very bland smile, he turned to Mr. Paige, calling him, I think, by his Christian name. " Willie," said he, " will you take my place at the dinner ? " He turned to me and added, — " My friend, will you hand Mrs. Webster to the dinner table ? I will not go just now ; I will come in a few minutes ; but do you go." Mrs. Webster took my arm, and we went to the dinner table, with sad, heavy feelings. Not a word was uttered ; we could say nothing. Soup was passed, merely tasted, and put aside. The mutton, though quite as good as he had described it, was scarcely touched. I had not been seated long at table when Bean came to me, and said that Mr. Webster wished to talk with me. I ■ accordingly went to him, as he lay on the sofa ; and then ensued the conversation, which I have given in a previous chapter, about the nomination of Scott, the destiny of the Whig party, and the character of General Pierce. Between seven and eight o'clock the doctor came, and Mrs. Webster appeared at the door to tell her husband of his arrival. "No, no," said Mr. Webster, "not yet; I must have this conversation out ; " and he locked the door. " Now," he went on, " for a few personal mat- ters. You are going in the morning, and very LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 435 likely I shall never have another opportunity to speak of them. You know that I have received a large fee lately [that in the Goodyear case], and have applied it to the payment of my debts. If 1 conld get two more such, I could die free of debt. It has been my constant aim and wish to pay my debts. They are not very large." This was quite true. He had reduced them very much in the previous five years. "Then," he added, "I should like to provide something for my family, and not leave them to the cold charity of the world. But Providence guides and overrules ; I cannot help it, and there- fore I submit to it. I should very much have pre- ferred to have my widow dependent upon no one for her support, after my decease. She is a mem- ber of a wealthy family, and has connections not only by reason of her marriage with me, but in her father's family ; so that she will be able to live without being indebted to any one, — not, per- haps, in the style that she has hitherto lived, or that I desire that she should. But she is not ex- travagant ; she is frugal and careful. Then there is Mr. Appleton, the husband of my poor Julia who has gone to heaven, and who has left him with four children ; he is a man of fortune, and I need therefore have no anxiety for their future, so far as money is concerned : I leave them with- out any regrets on that score. Now I come to Fletcher. When I think of poor Fletcher and his family, my heart bleeds. He has not been success- ful. He has much talent, but he does not seem to 486 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. have the knack of getting along in the world and making money. I wish that I could feel that he and his family were provided for ; but that is out of the question. All I can say to you is, that I am quite sure that my friends will not see my own son driven to the necessity of begging his bread. There I must leave it, in the hands of an all-wise God ; and through His providence I shaD trust that Fletcher will be taken care of." It was now nearly nine o'clock. There was some commotion outside, and Mrs. Webster was evidently worried about his undertaking so long a conversation. " Give yourself no uneasiness," he said to her : " I have sought this conversation ; and whether it makes me worse or not, it has relieved me. Now, you [speaking to me] must go to-morrow morning early; but come and see me again just as soon as you can." "I will come right down," I replied, "just as soon as my business arrangements will permit." " People will inquire of you what my bodily con- dition is. I do not wish to mislead or lie to any- body, nor have you do it ; still, I do not want to be the subject of newspaper comment as to my health. Now, if you will assist me into the other room [a little room where he wrote his letters], I will dictate a letter to the President of the United States before I retire." He sat down at the table, took his pen, and with a very significant look began to write ; putting, perhaps, the date upon the letter. LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 437 "' Now you can say," he remarked, " and it will be true, that you saw Mr. Webster, the Sunday night before you left him, writing at his table. You can say that truly, can you not ? It will be an answer, and save me from annoyance." lie then dictated a brief letter to President Fillmore. That Sabbath evening was a melancholy one, succeeding a sad day. It was one of the last occa- sions on which he sat up ; but he was as anxious as ever for the comfort of his guests. He attended to every little thing, as though each was a matter of importance. He insisted that every one should do promptly what belonged to him to do. It was curious to observe his particularity in this respect. We had talked a great deal during the day, and the time came for him to retire. Calling his black servant, William Bean, he asked him, — " Is Porter Wright in the kitchen ? " " No, sir," replied William, " he has gone back to his house." " Tell Baker to come here.'* When he came, Mr. Webster said : — "Baker, go down to Porter Wright's, and tell him that I want to see him in about five minutes ; and tell Monica to come here." Monica came in, and he said to her : — '• Monica, Mr. Harvey is going home to-morrow morning. I don't want him to go without the best breakfast he ever had ; and you know how to give it to him." '' I do, indeed, Mr. Webster." 438 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. " To-morrow morning, Monica, have the table spread, and a little fire built in the dining-room. Let me see. In the first place, give him the best cup of coffee you can ; then, some toast ; broil a steak; give him a bit of ham, and a boiled egg. Bake a potato; and put them all on the table smoking hot, precisely at half-past five by the Shrewsbury clock." " It shall all be done just as you say, sir." " And you, William, to-morrow morning at ex- actly five o'clock, — right on the moment, — take a cup of shaving- water to Mr. Harvey's room ; and knock on the door till you get an answer, if you have to pound your knuckles off. And when Mr. Harvey gives you an answer, set down the shaving- water, and ask him for his clothes. Take them out, and give them a good brushing. Porter Wright [who had just come in], Mr. Harvey is going to the depot to-morrow morning. Have the horses harnessed and the carriage at the door at six o'clock, to a minute. Have it at the library door, and the coachman on the box ; put ' Tren- ton ' and ' Morgan ' into Mrs. Webster's light carriage." " Now," said he, turning to me, " I will take your arm, and go upstairs." He leaned heavily on my arm, and went up to his room. We took an affectionate leave of each other, and the next morning I left Marshfield for Boston. It was not long after this, when his life was lapidly drawing to a close, that he one day called LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 43 li Mr. Hatch, one of his men, into his sick room. When he came in, Mr. Webster said : — '' Mr. Hatch, who is now in the room ? " " No one but Wilham," was the reply. *' Very well ; William will tell no tales. I have a secret for you. I want you to go, as soon as it is dark, and hang a lantern at the mast-head of ray little shallop behind the house, and raise the colors. Be sure and keep that light burning every night as long as I live. Don't fail to do this. I want to keep my flag flying and my light burning till I die." This little pleasure-boat was very dear to Mr. Webster, because it once belonged to his beloved son Edward. From the window of his sick room, as he lay in bed, he could see the hght at the mast- head. He ordered it to be put up secretly, that the sight of it might give his family an agreeable sur- prise when they saw it for the first time glimmer- ing in the darkness. When Mrs. Webster came into the room that evening, he asked her if she could see the ducks in the pond. On going to the window, she was astonished to observe the lantern at the mast-head. On the very last day that he went downstairs from his chamber, — when he insisted on being helped down by his friends, — he put on his hat, and looked out on this sheet of water behind the house. There had been an autumnal gale the night before. He looked out, and cried cheerfully, — " Halloo ! I perceive that the home squadron has outridden the gale ! " 440 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. He then returned to his room. A week or ten days before he died, he insisted on having the cattle driven up the lane in front of the house ; and he gazed on them with as much delight as a child on his playthings. He wished them to be girted, which was done by his farmer. Mr. Webster made guesses as to how much they would measure, and watched the operation with the liveliest interest. I did not see Mr. Webster again, after the Sun- day interview which I have given, until two weeks after, on the Saturday previous to his death. I had been to Vermont on business connected with the railway of which I was then treasurer ; and had received daily bulletins, which Mr. Webster asked his secretary to send to me, as to the condition of his health. These bulletins made no men- tion of any marked change. In one of them there was a little encouragement. He said that the swelling of the abdomen had decreased, and this was regarded by the doctors as a favorable symptom. Otherwise, he remained about the same. I returned to Boston on Friday morning, and then received news of a sudden and serious turn in his disease. He had begun to vomit blood, which was an indication of a speedy termination of life. I started the next morning for Marshfield. When I arrived there, Mr. Webster was surrounded by his family ; or rather, they were in the house, but not in his room. No one was then admitted to see him except his doctor. Mrs. Webster was in great distress ; his life had become a question of hours. I LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 441 had been telegraphed to come, and Mr. Jackson had been down to meet me two or three times. Of course all hope was over. I met Fletcher, who seemed much gratified that I had come. I found Mr. Webster at times suffering terribly from his fits of vomiting blood ; at other times he was calm and free from pain. Dr. Jeffries, his at- tending physician, and Dr. Porter, had intimated that, unless he had some important communication to make concerning his affairs, it would not be well that he should see any one, as talking would only make hun worse, and increase his sufferings. Fletcher said : — "I want Mr. Harvey to see my father ; he does not know he is here." " You can do as you please," replied Dr. Jeffries ; " I have forbidden everybody." I said to Fletcher that there were others who should see him, especially his relatives ; and that while I, of course, was anxious to see his father if it could be allowed, I had no desire to go to him in an invidious manner. " You must see him," said Fletcher: " he is anxious to see you." Being thus urged, I could no longer refuse to go in. Tie day was rapidly wearing away, and night was coming on. Dr. Mason Warren, who had been sent for, was expected every moment. We were all gathered very near the door of Mr. Webster's room, sitting on the stairs. Fletcher passed in and out, bringing news of his condition. In a few mo- ments he came and whispered to me, — 442 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. " Now you must go in and see father. He is lying perfectly free from pain ; and he looks like a king." " Does he know I am here ? " I asked. " No ; and I do not wish him to know, until you yourself tell him." " I would rather not go in," said I " until the doctor permits it." Fletcher then asked the doctor if there was any objection. He replied that he would no longer object, and that probably Mr. Webster would not now be disturbed by my going in. I then followed Fletcher to the door, and went in. The room was not laro;e : and as soon as I entered, Mr. Webster could see me, for the candles were burning brightly. As soon as he saw me, he exclaimed in a very dis- tinct voice : — " Why, is it possible that this is you ? I thought you would come. Come to me." I at once passed across the room, very much touched, and weeping. When I reached the bed- side, he held out both hands, and put his arms around my neck and kissed me. Then he said : " Kiss me." " It is distressing to see you suffering so, Mr. Webster," I said, " and so ill." "I am not so ill but that I know you. I am sick, but I am not too sick to call down blessings on you, faithful friend, — true in life, true in death. I shall be dead to-morrow," he added, softly. " Do not leave this room until I am gone. LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 44 o Promise me that you will not." He reached out his arms to me, and again kissed me. " God bless you, faithful friend ! " he said ; re- peating the words several times. He still kept his arms around my neck. His hands, as he continued to hold me close to him, felt as cold as ice. It was a sad, sad moment. A few moments later I perceived that some one was gently removing his hands from me. It was the doctor. I left the bed-side. Those who had been w^aiting on the stairs came into the room, — Mr. and Mrs. Paige, Mr. George Curtis, Mr. Appleton. and others. " Don't, don't leave me ! " said Mr. Webster, im- ploringly, as I drew away from him. " You prom- ised that you w^ould not leave the room until I was dead." " I shall keep my promise," I replied. Mr. Webster then took a loving leave of those who had come in, shook hands with them all, and called them by name. After this agitating scene, the doctor thousrht it best that Mr. Webster should try to get some sleep, and asked those who had come in to leave the room. All retired, excepi myself. A few moments after. Dr. Warren came. Mr. Webster was very glad to see him, and said to him that he had taken the liberty to send for him. It was, he said, the last night that he should trouble any one on earth. He then inquired for the elder Dr. Warren, and sent a friendly message to him. After this, he lay apparently comfortable for an hour, or an hour and a half. They were constantly 444 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. giving him opiates till his last moment. He lin- gered on some hours into the night, and as the clock struck two, Daniel Webster quietly passed away from earth. I wish to add to this account of my illustrious friend's last hours that which Dr. Jeffries gave, soon after Mr. Webster's death, at a meeting of the Southern District Medical Society at New Bedford. On this occasion Dr. Jeffries said : — " After the injury which Mr. Webster received by a fall from his carriage, he went to Boston, and was under my professional care for several days previous to his address in Faneuil Hall. I had visited him two or three times daily, and had re- duced his diet below his usual mode of living, in consequence of inflammation in his arm. On the day of his address, I visited him twice in the morn- ing, and dressed his arm particularly for the occa- sion. After dressing it I said : ' I have kept you very low, sir, for some time ; and as you have an arduous duty to perform to-day, I think I shall advise you to take a glass of wine at dinner, and to eat a little meat.' " He was walking across the room at this time, when he stopped, and, turning towards me, replied in a familiar but decided manner, — " ' I don't know. Doctor ; I think I shall not. I have found the benefit of temperance. I shall take a cup of soup, retire to my chamber and lie down for two hours ; then I shall dress and be ready for his Honor the Mayor when he calls to attend me to Faneuil Hall.' LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 446 '' At his request I went with him to the Hall, and am fully convinced that he had not on that day, or for some days preceding, taken even the smallest amount of stimulating drinks. I admit that Mr. Webster was in the occasional use of wine, and sometimes of other alchoholic drinks, and gave as a probable reason that it was much more the custom in Washington than in this city ; but I confidently express the opinion that no man can be produced, who can show that he knows, — although many might erroneously presume, as in the instance above referred to, — that his great intellect was ever clouded by stimulants ; or that he was un- fitted at any time, even for the production of State papers. " At the time of his reception by the City, Mr. Webster appeared to possess his full intellectual strength. In reply to an apprehension expressed by me that morning, he said : — " ' I feel as able now to make a speech of two hours' duration as ever I did in my life.' " But he was laboring under great physical debil- ity, requiring the constant assistance of an attend- ant about his person. This was dispensed with, by a great effort on his part, as was also a sling for his arm, because he did not wish to appear before his fellow-citizens as a sick man. " I have always found Mr. Webster perfectly obe- dient as a patient, especially in following strictly the diet and regimen prescribed for him. " The nature of the complaints for which I have attended him has required that these restrictions 446 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. should be sometimes severe, and on one important occasion were directly opposed to his own view of his case ; but he nevertheless yielded implicitly to my instructions. " In his last sickness he required the most exact admeasurement of such stimulants as were thought advisable, and would take none without my express directions. " I am also assured that he always practised the greatest self-denial whenever especially called upon for the exertion of his intellectual powers. The mighty productions of his pen exhibit the clear- ness of his intellect as much as the profoundness of his thought. The most rigid casuist may be de- fied to point to one line in his voluminous works which indicated the weakness of the inebriate." At a late hour upon the night of his death, Mr. Webster remarked to Dr. Jeffries that he had better lie down and get some rest. Dr. Jeffries, knowing the character of the man, suggested that he should read a hymn which was supposed to be a favorite of Mr. Webster. Mr. Webster having made an intimation in the affirmative, Dr. Jeffries read the following hymn : — There is a fountain filled ■with blood Drawn from Immanuel's veins ; And sinners, plunged beneath that flood, Lose all their guilty stains. The dying thief rejoiced to see That fountain in his day ; And there may I, though vile as he, Wash all my sins away. LAST DAYS AND DEATH. 447 Ihnv dying Lamb ! thy precious blood Should never lose its power, Till all the ransomed Chui-ch of God Are saved, to sin no more. Since first by faith I saw the stream Thy flowing wounds supply, Redeeming love has been my theme, And shall be till I die. And when this feeble, stammering tongue Lies silent in the grave. Then in a nobler, sweeter song, I'll sing Thy power to save. After Dr. Jeffries had finished reading this hymn, Mr. Webster, in a clear, strong voice, rephed, " Amen, amen, amen ! " According to miiversal custom in the town of Marshfield, on the Sabbath of Mr. Webster's death, between the hours of seven and eio-ht o'clock in the morning, the bell of the parish church was rung violently, to announce to the startled inhabitants within hearino^ that a death had occurred amono* them. Then it was struck three times three as a signal that a male person had died. Next, the bell was struck slowly and deliberately seventy strokes, to denote the age of the dead ; and then there went up a mournful voice from every house, " It must be that Daniel Webster is dead," — " The pride of our nation has fallen," " Our great neighbor and townsman is no more." The spot where Daniel Webster reposes is upon elevated land, and overlooks the sea, his mammoth 448 REMINISCENCES OF DANIEL WEBSTER. farm, the First Parish Church, and most of the town of Marshfield, — wide-spreading marshes, for- ests remote and near, the tranquil river, and glisten- ing brooks. On a pleasant day the sands of Cape Cod can be descried from it, thirty miles directly to the east, where the Pilgrims first moored their ship. The spot is perfectly retired and quiet, nothing be- ing usually heard but the solemn dirge of the ocean and the answering sighs of the winds. It is the spot of all others for his resting place. APPENDIX. THE BURNHAM STATUE OF WEBSTER. It is not inappropriate to the purpose of this volume to describe the remarkable and munificent testimonial offered by a citizen of New York to the fame of Daniel Webster, and to the reverence for his great intellect and the affection for his manly virtues which have kept his memory green. It was, indeed, the particular wish of Mr. Harvey that the memorable proceedings and addresses at New York, on the 25th of November, 1876, should be included in this work. He was present on the occasion, and he repeatedly expressed the hope that this crowning ceremonial in honor of his illustrious friend might have a place in his volume of Reminiscences. Mr. Gordon Webster Burnhajm, a gentleman of large wealth and of artistic tastes, having an exalted veneration for Mr. Webster's character, tendered to the New York department of public parks, in 1874, a statue of the statesman, to be erected in Central Park. The following is the letter in which this offer was made : — Henry G. Stebbins, Esq., President of the Department of Public Parks. Dear Sm : In accordance with the suggestions heretofore made in conversation with 3'our predecessor, Mr. Wales, and \ourself, I respectfully offer for the Central Park a bronze jsliitue of Daniel Webster, of colossal size, with an appro- 29 450 APPENDIX. priate granite pedestal, the whole work to be executed b}- the best artist in a manner altogether worthy the grandeur of the subject and the conspicuous position it is designed to occupy at the lower entrance to the Mall. This position, proposed by Mr. President Wales, and cordially approved by yourself and other gentlemen of no less excellent taste and judgment, will exactly suit my pur- pose in devoting so large a sum of money as will be required to adorn the Park, and to honor the merc.ory of one of America's noblest sons ; whose patriotic eloquence, devoted to the defence of her institutions during his hfe, will continue to animate and inspire to the latest time that sentiment of " Libert}' and Union, now and for ever, one and inseparable," which has saved the Nation, and will continue to protect it. I trust that my offer to place this statue on the site pro- posed will meet the speedy acceptance of 3-our Department, in order that the work may be duly completed by the Fourth of July, 1876, — the Centennial of American Independence. I have the honor to be, with great respect, Your obedient servant, Gordon W. Burnham. No. 128 Fifth Ave., New York, July 25, 1874. Some opposition was at first raised to this project ; but the proposed gift was so munificent, and the appro- priateness of a statue of America's greatest statesman in America's noblest pleasure ground was so evident, that opposition was soon silenced, and Mr. Burnham's gift was accepted by the City. The unveiling of the statue took place, in Central Park, on Saturday the 25th of November, 1876, — a date memorable in the Revolutionary annals of New York, — before a large concourse of people. The fol- lowing description of this stately specimen of the sculpt- ural art is taken from the "New York Times" of the next day : — APPENDIX. 451 " The centre of attraction was the statue itself, which tow- ered above the throng with an imposing grace, which might apt!}- be compared with the prominence of its distinguished protot3'pe among his fellows. It is, indeed, a noble work of art, and one well worthy of commemorating the fame of the gi-eat champion of the Constitution. Upon a massive granite pedestal, ornamented at the side with Corinthian columns imbedded in stone, rises a magnificent bronze effigy of Web- ster, of heroic size. The figiu-e is attired in the old-fashioned di-ess coat of thirty years ago, with the right arm thrust in the folds, and the left hanging naturally at the side. Behind the figure the trunk of a tree is represented, partially covered by a cloak. The expression upon the countenance is one of commanding firmness, shghtly tinged with sadness, and beneath all an intense mental power, which, together, form a happy reflex of Webster's prevaihng spii'it. Upon the front of the polished granite pedestal is the inscription, taken from the redoubtable reply to Hayne : ' Libert}' and Union, Now and Forever, One and Inseparable ; ' on the reverse are the words: 'Presented by Gordon W. Bukniiam, July IV., MDCCCLXXVI.' The statue is the work of Mr. Thomas Ball, and was modelled at Florence and cast in Munich. Its height is fourteen feet, and its weight six tons. The pedestal weighs over one hundred tons, and is twenty feet in height.'' The ceremony of inauguration took place at two o'clock. On the platform, among other distinguished persons, were Gordon W. Buiinham, the donor, Mayor WiCKHAM, Hon. William M. Evarts, Hon. Robert C. WiNTHROP, Ex-Governor E. D. Morgan, Gover- nor Ingersoll, of Connecticut, Lieutenant-Governor Knight, of Massachusetts, Hon. Peter Harvey, District-Attorney Phelps, and William R. Martin, President of the Department of Parks. The assembly was called to order by President Martin, who spoke aa follows : — 452 APPENDIX. " To-day, in the chief city of his country, we place on a pedestal of gi-anite, standing on the basic rock, the statue of the man whose learning and eloquence did so much to estab- lish the principles of the Constitution on enduring founda- tions, — did so much to fix in every heart that love for and faith in the Union which, like love and faith always, in the crisis, were our salvation. " Surmounting all discord of interests and opinions, through the blood of the Revolution, a century ago, our fathers laid the foundations of the RepubUc. "In the middle of the century these foundations were opened, fundamental principles were agitated anew, were resettled, and planted in the hearts of the people. In our day, they have survived the severest tests to which Liberty and Union could have been subjected. They have proved the strongest of all the forces, natural and moral, by which we are suiTOunded. "Through this course of our history there was room, there was need, for a man — for many men, but for one supremely eminent — for the duty of standing between the past and the future, between the two wars, — the first suc- cessfiil to build up, the second faiUng to overthrow ; need of a man with heart large enough to embrace all, mind large enough to comprehend all, and, upon all principles and all duties of our pride and our hopes, to build the temple and within it the altar of the country, before which all hearts are one and all discordant interests disappear. " It is the noble acts of such a man that we to-day com- memorate." Mr. GoEDON W. BuRNHAM was then introduced, and thus addressed the Mayor : — "Mr. Mayor: Having always been a great admirer of Mr. "Webster, and having a strong desire that something should be done to perpetuate his memorj', I have caused this statue to be erected, which I trust may be as enduiing as his APPENDIX. 453 fame, and the gi'auite upon which it stands. I now have the pleasure, through you, of presenting this statue of Daniel Webster, with its pedestal, to the city of New York. I com- mit it to your guardianship, trusting that it may be faithfully cared for and protected in all time to come." The statue was then unveiled by Thomas Brownell BuRNHAM, the donor's youngest son, amid loud cheers. Mayor Wickham, in accepting the gift, said : — " Mr. Burnham and Gentlemen : The cit}' of New York accepts this statue with many acknowledgments for the munifi- cence and pubUc spirit which are shown now, not for the first time, by the donor, and with profound regard and reverence for the remarkable man whose features and figure it so admirably reproduces. The time is well chosen for reminding the peo- ple of all these United States, as this image does, of the gr(^atness of the intellect and resources of Daniel Webster, and of the glorious use to which he put them in the pubhc service. In the midst of the confusion made by contending p.irties, who struggle now for power in the Republic, this monument to the most illustrious of the sons of New Eng- land is eloquent of the moderation, the wisdom, and the abounding patriotism of his counsels, which helped to guide ■the country through so many dangers now happily passed. And, in the new perils to which constitutional government is to-day exposed, to turn the thoughts of men again to the great exjiounder of the Constitution himself, as these im- pressive proceedings will turn them, cannot but be productive of good influences. The cit}'' will guard and keep this noble gift with watchful care, that generations yet to come may learn the lessons taught by Webster." President Martin then introduced Hon. William M EvARTS, who delivered the following Address : — ' 4 54 APPENDIX. " Mr. Mayor and Ffxlow-citizens : I congratulate you, Mr. Burnham, upon the prosperous execution of a noble pur- pose. You did me the honor, in meditating this grand gift tc the city and to the country, to ask my concun-ence in this munificent act. I know that it proceeded, in your intention, from nothing but admiration of Mr. Webster, because he was a gi-eat servant of his countr}', and from j'our patriotism, that desired to perpetuate his influence in a form that should be as enduring and as eloquent as any preservation of his memory to his countr^anen could possibly be. I congratulate you, Mr. Mayor, and the city of New York, for the gi-ateful and graceful performance of a duty now for the second and third time of receiving noble monuments to the fame of great citi- zens of this couutr}', and the acceptance of permanent and impressive decorations of our pubUc places. And 3'ou, fellow- citizens, I congratulate upon the benignant sky and the genial air that in these last da^'s of November, so apt to be the saddest of the year, have for this occasion given us the brightness and the joy of opening Spring. I congratulate you more deepl3% that 3'ou and your children, from generation to generation, are here to renew the lessons of patriotism and of duty which Mr. Webster in his lifetime taught so wisely" and so well. I congratulate 3'Ou upon this evidence that public spirit does not fail in a Repubhc. It has been the reproach of equal society that it bred selfishness, and it has been a maxim that munificence belonged to kings and to nobles, and that splendor and elegance and magnificence flowed downward, and could never be the gi'owth of an equal societ3' ; but our Mstor3' has in this, as in so man3' other things, falsified these maxims of our race. Where mil you find wider and better, more numerous or more noble, instances of charit3', of public spirit, and of contributions to the public taste and public enjo3Tnent, than this RepubUc of ours presents ever3^here? And where will 3'Ou find in other lands instances worthy to be recorded with this of Mr. Burnham, where a single citizen, doing his share as one of the people, for the good of the nation, has made and planned as great and noble a gift? APPENDIX. 455 *'Mr. Mayor, on this occasion we find no need of dis- tinct eulogy. "V^^loevcr speaks to any of our countr}Tnen of Mr. Webster, of his hfe, of his public senices, of liis genius, and of his fame, can tell them nothing new, nor can he hope to enlarge or deepen their admiring homage which attended him through a whole generation in his Ufe- time, and in the quarter of a century that has passed since his death has hallowed his memor}-. Nor, were it otherwise, would any thing but the briefest commemoration and the simplest eulogy befit the occasion. This noble restoration of his imposing presence, and the solemn echo which arises in every mind, of the last words which passed his hps, ' I still live ! ' — these speak to us to-day ; and all other oratory is superfluous. There he stands, as he stood for a whole life- time of assured fame, in tlie full blaze of a whole people's attention, crowned by his Maker with glory and honor — as he stood in the courts, in the Senate, in the popular assemblies, at the helm of State, amid the crowds that followed his steps in every pubhc concourse. And 3'et I could not but ^ield, Mr. Burnhara, to 3'our request that I should share with Mr. Webster's friend, and our friend, Mr. Winthrop, in bringing to attention some of the principal traits of Mr. Webster's char acter, some of the prominent instances of his gi-eat pubhc services. " My first knowledge of Mr. Webster, in the way of per- sonal association with him, occurred just as I was lea\ing college, and he, in 1837, was making that remarkable prog- ress from the Capitol at Washington to his home in the East, on which his steps were delayed in ever}- cit}' by the instant demands of the people that they should see him and that he should speak to them. I had, as a school-boy in Boston, been famihar with his person as that of the principal citizen of that place, but in after hfe it came to be my fortune to be associated with him in pubhc relations only during the last few years of his hfe. I can bear testimony that, without arrogance, yet full of dignity, he never sought to enhance, but always to lessen, the imposing influence which his mien and 456 APPENDIX. his fame impressed on every one. The kinclKness of Ms man ner and his affectionate attention to every claim made upon his duty or his favor, none who knew him will ever forget ; and if my voice now can for a moment recall more nearly than the general recollection of his countrymen might do, what was great and valuable in his character and in his pubUc service, it is an office both of affection and duty that I should so do. " No one brings to his thoughts the life of Mr. Webster without instantl}^ dwelUng upon the three principal gi-eat departments of highest influence in which he moved, and where he showed his power, and shed in a shower of benefi- cence upon his countrymen and their institutions the great effulgence of his intellect and the warmth of his patriotism. I mean, of course, as a lawyer, as a statesman, and as an orator. No doubt, in the histor}- of the country, names can be recalled which, considered singly and simply in relation to what makes up the character and authority of the law^'er, may compete with or may surpass Mr. Webster. No one can di\ade with Chief Justice Marshall the immense power of judicial penetration which he maintained through a life length- ened beyond eighty 3'ears ; and eminent men of learning, of weight, of authority with the profession and with the pubhc, may be named that at least occupy, in the simple character of lawj'ers, for learning and judgment, as elevated a place as Mr. Webster. But I am quite sure that there is not, in the general judgment of the profession, nor in the conforming opin- ion of his countr^onen, any lawyer that, in the magnitude of his causes, in the greatness of their pubhc character, in the immensity of their influence upon the fortunes of the country, or in the authority which his manner of forensic eloquence produced in courts and over courts, can be placed in the same rank with Mr. Webster. As a statesman, we must include in our mention as well the character and the part of the party leader, as that of the guide and guardian of the pubUc inter- ests in the more elevated plane of the councils of the country. And in this, whatever we may say of the great men who, at f^T APPENDIX. 45 the biiiih of the Nation and in the framing of the Constitution, and then, with Uves prolonged, attending the first steps of the progress of the new-born Nation, estabhslied their own fame and contributed to the greatness and the safety of the country, we shall find no man in our generation — no man coming down to our generation from that preceding one — who has held such a share of influence in the popular assembhes, in the counsels of the pail}', in the State or in the Senate, or in the discharge of the duties of a Minis- ter of State, who can at all contest with Mr. "Webster the pre-eminent position of the statesman of the whole country, for the whole countrj', and in results which the whole country has felt. And then, when we come to oratory, he combined the intellectual, the moral, and the personal traits which make up that power in the Nation, which gave to one Grecian above all others of his countr^inen — Pericles — the title of Olym- pian. Who so much in our time and in our Nation has com- bined all those traits so often severed as Mr. Webster? Whether he lifted his voice, mirum spargens sonum, in the court, or in the Senate, or at the hustings, or in the oratory of pubhc occasions, and to select audiences, he spoke as one ha^'ing authority' with his people ; and that authority was always recognized and always obej-ed. To these three recognized and famihar departments of his pre-eminence we must add a fourth, — his clear title in the sphere of Uterature to be held as one of the greatest authors and writers of our mother tongue that America has produced. We all recognize the great distinction in this regard of Burke and of Macaulay. In the flow of thek eloquence as writers, and in the splendors of then- diction, Mr. Webster did not approach them, nor would he have desired to imitate them. But I propose to the most competent critics of the Nation, that they can find nowhere six octavo volumes of printed literary production of an American, that contains as much noble and as much beautiful imagery, as much warmth of rhetoric, and of magnetic impression upon the reader, as are to be found in the collected writings and speeches of Danie' Webster. 458 APPENDIX. "But, fellow-citizens, as a citizen and as a patriot, Mr. Webster was gi-eatest in the opinion of his countrymen in his life, and greatest in the judgment of posterity since his death. "What are all those mere gifts of intellect, however vast; what these advantages of person, of education, of position, and of power in the country, if then- possessor fails or falls short in his devotion to his countr}^ and in his ser- vice to the State ? And he that will look thi-ough the preserved, recorded evidence of Mr. Webster's life will see at once that, from his youth to his death, he was as full of pubUc spirit and as full of pubUc labors, as if his Ufe had not been busy and important in its private, professional, and personal re- lations. He served the State, and labored for and loved it from boyhood up. He withheld no service, he shrunk from no labor, he di'ew no nice distinctions as to opportunities or occasions. Whenever a word was to be spoken, and could be usefully spoken, to the American people, in the lecture-room, on the anniversary occasion, in the public assembhes, in the cities and in the countrj^ on exciu'sions and progresses through large stretches of our tenitory, North and South, East and West, always on an elevated stage, and in a conspicuous cause, he gave his gi'eat powers to this service of the people. "What could exceed the breadth and generosit}- of his \4ews, the comprehensiveness, the nationaUtj', of his rela- tions to the people ! Born in the North-eastern corner of New England, the North-eastern corner of the countr}', seated for the practice of his profession and for his domes- tic life in the city of Boston, on the very outside rim of our countrj-'s territory, — I defy any one to find, from the moment he left his pi-o\iucial college at Daitmouth, to the time that he was buried on the shore of Marshfield, a time when that great heart did not beat, and that gi-eat intellect did not work for the service equally of all the American people. North and South, East and West. We do not find all the great men of this country thus large and hberal in the comprehension of thek pubhc spirit, thus constant and warm in the exercise of patriotic feehng. I cannot even allude to APPENDIX. 459 the immense and the frequent public services that Mr. Webster performed ; but I have this to say, that I would rather that the men and the youth of this country should read the perora- tion of Mr. "Webster's speech in reply to Hayne, and the pero- ration of his speech for the country and its peace on the 7th of March, 1850, than any equal passages in all the text-books and all the oratory of our pohtics from the time he died until now. I would Uke to have anybody that has been instructed by the last twenty-five years see if he could portray the ev-ils, the weaknesses, the woes of nuUification under the Constitution, the wretchedness and the falsity of the claims and schemes of peaceful secession, better than Webster could do and did do in advance. I would hke to see one touch of art, one word of eloquence, one proof or reason that can be added under this stern teaching of a quarter of a centmy, that is not found in those great speeches now. His countrymen questioned him, his countr^ynnen mahgned him ; but it was his countr}' that he loved, and he would not curse it for anybod^-'s cursing him. " On Boston Common, in July, 1852, just before his death, when he stood in the face of Boston people, whom he had sen-ed for thirty j-ears, he used these words : ' My manner of political hfe is known to you all. I leave it to my country, to posterity, and to the world to see whether it will or will not stand the test of time and trath.' Twentj'-five 3'ears of our history has shed a flood of light upon the past, and em- blazoned anew the records of Mr. Webster's pubUc hfe. I shall not rehearse them, but I say this to 3'ou, and I challenge contradiction, that from the beginning to the end that record is true to the gi'eat principle that presided over the birth of the Nation, and found voice in the Declaration of Independence ; that was wrought into the very fabric of the Constitution ; thai carried us, with unmutilated territory, and undefiled Constitu tion, and unbroken authorit}' of the Government, through the sacrifices and the terrors and the woes of civil war ; that will sustain us through all the heats and agues which attend the e'-yeps of the Nation to perfect health and strength. The 460 APPENDIX. great principle embossed in enduring granite on this pedestal, and from the time it was announced from those eloquent lips, is firmly fixed in the consciences and hearts of this people ; ' Liberty and union, now and for ever, one and inseparable.' The gi-eat names of our Revolutionary history, — the signers of the Declaration of Independence, the framers of the Con- stitution, the wise men who, surviving from that generation, confirmed the progress of the country under its Constitution and its new hberties, — no American will allow their fame to be disparaged or divided ; and of the men that followed them up to your time, how many do you owe great obhgations to? How much to Clay and Adams ? How much to Jackson and Wright? How much to Seward and Chase, and all their con- temporaries ? But if I were to name two men whose services were incomparably above that of all others in making this new experiment of free government and of paper constitutions a living power to a gi-eat and strenuous nation ; two that could not have been spared though all others remained, — I should say that to the gi-eat Chief Justice Marshall, and to the great foi-ensic, popular, parUamentary defender and expounder of the Constitution, Daniel Webster, we most owe what we now enjoy. Who shall deny to him the title, ' of our constituted liberties the greatest defender ' ? " And now, what shall we say of this great man in the per- sonal and private traits of his character? I should say of Mr. Webster that, if there were one single trait conspicuous in him and pre-eminent as compared with others who have made for themselves great names in history, it would be the abundant charity of his nature. He never assumed for him- self in private intercourse, or in pubUc speech, any superiority. He never tolerated in his presence, and he never practised, either evil speech or evil surmise. His frown followed even their casual introduction about the table and in pubUc dis- cussions, and he never tolerated any confusion between intel- lectual dissection of an argument and moral inculpation of the reasoner. I do not know that one should question ambition, for it is the pubhc passion by which gi-eat public talents are APPENDIX. 461 made useful to a people. But I will say of Mr. Webster, that he seemed to me never to have an}- ambition but that which is an inseparable part of the possession of great powers of public usefulness, but that which is sanctioned by the injunc- tion that great talents are not to be buried in the earth, and by the requirement that the Ught which God has given that it should shine before men is to be placed on a candlestick. "And now within the narrower circle, not ill-represented here in the crowd before me, and on this stand, of those who en- joyed close and friendly intercourse with Mr. Webster ; who knew, better than the world knew, the greatness of his powers and the nobleness of his nature, — shall we be guilty of any disrespect to the hving, shall it not be pardoned to affection, if we sa}' that the associations with those who survive seem to us but httle, compared with the memory of him whose friend- ship we remember, and whose fame we rehearse ? ' Eheu ! quanto minus cum reliquis versari, quam tui meminisse.' " The Hon. Robert C. Westthrop, of Boston, was then introduced. He spoke as follows : — " I am here, Mr. Maj-or, fellow-countrymen and friends, with no purpose of trespassing very long on your attention. I was doubtful almost to the last moment whether I should be able to be here at all to-day, and I am afraid that I have neither voice nor strength for many words in the open air. " But, indeed, the Addi-ess of this occasion has been made. It has been made b}' one to whom it was most appropriately assigned, and who had ever}' title and every talent for mak- ing it. It was pecuharl}' fit that this grand gift to youi magnificent Park should be acknowledged and welcomed by a citizen of New York, — one of whom j'ou are all justly proud, an eminent advocate and jurist, a distinguished statesman and public speaker, with the laurels of the Cen- tennial oration at Philadelphia still fresh on his brow. The utterances of this hour might well have ended with him. 462 APPENDIX. "I could not, however, find it in my heart to refuse alto- gether the repeated and urgent request of your munilicent fellow-citizen, Mr. Burnliam, that I would be here on the platform with Mr. Evarts and himself, to-day, to witness the unveiUng of this noble statue, and to add a few words in com- memoration of him whom it so vividly and so impressively portrays. "Mr. Burnham has done me the honor to call me to his assistance on this occasion, as one who had enjoj-ed some pecuhar opportunities for knowing the illustrious statesman to whose memorj' he is pajing these large and sumptuous hon- ors. And it is true, my friends, that my personal associations with Mr. Webster reach back to a distant day. I recall him as a familiar visitor in the homes of more than one of those with whom I was most nearly connected, when I was but a schoolboy, on his first removal to Boston, in 1817. I recall the deep impressions produced on all who heard him, and communicated to all who did not hear him, b}' his great efforts in the Constitutional Convention of Massachusetts, and, soon afterward, by his noble discourse at Plymouth Rock, in 1820. I was m^-self in the crowd which gazed at him, and Ustened to him with admiration, when he laid the corner-stone of the Monument on Bunker Hill, in presence of Lafa^'ette, in 1824. I was myself in the throng which hung with rapture on his lips as he pronounced that splendid eulogy on Adams and Jefferson, in Faneuil Hall, in 1826. Entering his office as a law student in 1828, I was under his personal tuition during three of the busiest and proudest years of his life. From 1840 to 1850, I was associated with him in the Congress of the United States ; and I may be pardoned for not forgetting that it was then my privilege and my pride to succeed him in the Senate, when he was last called into the Cabinet, as Secretary of State, by President Fillmore. " I have thus no excuse, my friends, for not knowing some- thing, for not knowing much, of Daniel Webster. Of those ■who knew him longer or better than I did, few, certainly, remain among the living ; and I could hardly have recon- APPENDIX. 463 ciled it with what is due to his memory, or with what is due to my own position, if I had refused, — I will not say to bear testimony to his wonderful powers and his great public services, for all such testimony would be as superfluous as to bear testimony to the light of the sun in the skies above us, — but, if I had declined to give expression to the gratifi- cation and delight with which the sons of New England and the sons of Massachusetts, and of Boston especially, and I, as one of them, cannot fail to regard this most signal com- memoration of one, whose name and fame were so long and so pecuUarly dear to them. "Neither Mr. Evarts nor I have come here to-day, my friends, to hold up Mr. Webster, — much as we may have achnired or loved him, — as one with whom we have always agi-eed, as one whose com-se we have unifomily approved, or in whose career we have seen nothing to regret. Our testi- mony is all the more trustworthy — my own certainly is — that we have sometimes differed from him. But we are here to recognize him as one of the greatest men our country has ever produced ; as one of the grandest figures in our whole national histor}' ; as one who, for intellectual power, had no superior, and hardl}' an equal, in our own land or in any other land, during his day and generation; as one whose written and spoken words, so fitly embalmed "for a Ufe beyond life " in the six noble volumes edited by Edward Everett, are among the choicest treasures of our language and literature ; and, still more and above all, as one who rendered inestimable services to his country, — at one period, vindicating its rights and preserving its peace with foreign nations by the most skilful and masterly diplomac}' ; at another period, rescuing its Constitution from overthrow, and repelling triumphantly the assaults of nullification and disunion, by overpowering argiunent and matchless eloquence. " JVir. Webster made many mar\^ellous manifestations of himself in his busy Ufe of three-score years and ten. Con- vincing arguments in the courts of law, brilliant appeals to popular assemblies, triumphant speeches in the Halls of 464 APPENDIX. Legislation, magnificent orations and discourses of commem oration or ceremony, — are thickl}' scattered along his whole career. I rejoice to remember how many of them I have heard from his own lips, and how much inspiration and instruction I have derived from them. To have seen and heard him on one of his field days, was a privilege which no one will undervalue who ever enjoj'ed it. There was a power, a breadth, a beauty, a perfection, in some of his efforts, when he was at his best, which distanced all approach and rendered rivalry ridiculous. " And if the style and tone and temper of our political dis- cussions are to be once more elevated, refined, and purified, — and we aU know how much room there is for elevation and refinement, — we must go back for our examples and models, at least as far as the daj-s of that great Senato- rial Trimnvirate, — Clay, Calhoim, and Webster. There were giants in those daj'S ; but none of them forgot that, though ' it is excellent to have a giant's strength, it is tyran- nous to use it like a giant.' " Among those who have been celebrated as orators or pub- lic speakers, in our own days or in other days, there have been many diversities of gifts, and many diversities of operations. There have been those who were listened to wholly for their intellectual qualities, for the wit or the wisdom, the learning or the philosophy, which characterized their eflbrts. There have been those whose main attraction was a curious felicity and faciUty of illustration and description, adorned by the richest gems which could be gathered b}^ historical research or clas- sical study. There have been those to whom the charms of manner and the graces of elocution and the melody of voice were the all-sufficient recommendations to attention and applause. And there have been those who owed their success more to opportunity' and occasion, to some stirring theme or some exciting emergency, than to any peculiar attributes of their own. But Webster combined every thing. No thoughts more profound and weighty. No st3'le more terse and telling. No illustrations more vivid and clear-cut. APPENDIX. 4G5 No occasions more august and momentous. No voice move deep and thrilling. No manner more impressive and admij-- able. No presence so grand and majestic, as bis. " That great brain of his, as I have seen it working, whether in public debate or in private converse, seemed to me often like some mighty machine, — alwaj's ready for action, and almost always in action, evolving much material from its own resources and researches, and eagerly appropriating and as- similating whatever was brought within its reach, producing and reproducing the richest fabrics with the ease and certainty, ^lie precision and the condensing energy, of a perfect Corliss engine, — such an one as many of us have just seen presiding so magically and so majestically over the Exposition at Pniiadelphia. ''And he put his own crown-stamp on almost every thing he uttered. There was no mistaking one of Webstei-'s great efforts. There is no mistaking them now. They will be dis- tinguished, in aU time to come, like pieces of old gold or silver plate, by an unmistakable mint-mark. He knew, like the casters or forgers of yonder Statue, not only how to pour forth burning words and blazing thoughts, but so to blend and fuse and weld together his facts and figures, his illustrations and arguments, his metaphors and subject-matter, as to bring them all out at last into one massive and enduiing image of his own great mind ! " He was by no means wanting in labor and stud}' ; and he often anticipated the earliest dawn in his preparations for an immediate effort. I remember how humorousl}' he told me once, that the cocks in his own yard often mistook his morn- ing candle for the break of day, and began to crow lustily as he entered his office, though it were two hours before sunrise. Yet he frequently did wonderful things ofl'-hand ; and one might often say of him, in the words of an old poet, — " ' His noble negligences teach What others' toils despau* to reach.' *' Not in our own land, only. Mi*. Mayor and fellow ca.mtiy' 30 466 APPENDIX. men, were the pre-eminent powers of Mr. Webster recognized and appreciated. Brougham, and L^-ndhurst, and the late Lord Derb}', as I had abundant opportunit}' of knowing, were no undeiTaters of his intellectual grasp and grandeur. I re- member well, too, the casual testimony of a venerable prelate of the English Church, — the late Dr. Harcourt, then Arch- bishop of York, — who said to me thirty years ago in London : ' I met 3'our wonderful friend, Mr. Webster, for only five minutes ; but in those five minutes I learned more of Ameri- can institutions, and of the peculiar working of the American Constitution, than in all that I had ever heard or read from any or all other sources.' "Of his Discourse on the Second Centennial Anniversary r^f the Landing of the Pilgrims on Plj^mouth Rock, John Adams wrote, in acknowledging a copy of it : ' Mr. Burke is no longer entitled to the praise of being the most consummate orator of modern times.' And, certainly, from the date of that Discourse, he stood second, as an Orator, to no one who spoke the English language. But it is peculiarly and pre- eminentl}' as the Expounder and Defender of the Constitution of the United States, in January, 1830, that he will be re- membered and honored as long as that Constitution shall hold a place in the American heart, or a place on the pages of the world's history. " Mr. Webster once said, — and perhaps more than once, — that there was not an article, a section, a clause, a phrase, a word, a syllable, or even a comma, of that Constitution, which he had not studied and pondered in every relation and in every construction of which it was susceptible. " Born at the commencement of the year 1782, at the Acry moment when the necessity of such an Instnnnent for pre- serving our Union, and making us a Nation, was first begin- nmg to be comprehended and felt by the patriots who had achieved our Independence, — just as they had fully discov- ered the utter insufficiency of the old Confederation, and how mere a rope of sand it was ; born in that ver^' year in which the Legislature of your own State of New York, under the APPENDIX. 467 lead of yom- gallant Philip Schuyler, at the prompting of your grand Alexander Hamilton, was adopting the very fu'st resolutions passed by any State in favor of such an lustru- ment, — it might almost be said that the natal air of the Constitution was his own natal air. He drank in its spirit with his earliest breath, and seemed born to comprehend, expound, and defend it. No Roman schoolboy- ever com- mitted to memor}' the laws of the Twelve Tables more dili- gently and thoroughly than did he the Constitution of his country. He had it by heart in more senses of the words than one, and every part and particle of it seemed only less precious and sacred to him than his Bible. "John Adams himself was not more trulj^ the Colossus of Independence in the Continental Congress of 1776, than Daniel Webster was the Colossus of the Constitution and the Union in the Federal Congi-ess of 1830. "For other speeches, of other men, it might perhaps be claimed, that they have had the power to inflame and pre- cipitate war, — foreign war or civil war. Of Webster's gi-eat speech, as a Senator of Massachusetts, in 1830 — and of that alone, I think — it can be said, that it averted and postjjoned Civil War for a whole generation. Yes, it repressed the irrepressible conflict itself for thirty years ! And when that dire calamity came upon us at last, though the voice of the master had so long been hushed, that speech still supplied the most convincing argimients and the most inspiring incite- ments for a resolute defence of the Union. It is not yet exhausted. There is argument and inspu'ation enough in it still, if only they be heeded, to carry us along, as a United People, at least for another Century. In that Speech ' he still lives ; ' and Uves for the Constitution and the Union of his Country. "Why, my friends, not even the Dynamite and Rend-rock and Vulcan powder of your scientific and gallant Newton were more eflfective in blasting and shattering 3-our Hell-Gate reef, and opening the way for the safe navigation of yonder Ba}', than that speech of Webster was in exploding the doc- 468 APPENDIX. h'ines of nullification, and clearing the channel for our Ship of State to sail on safety, prosperously, triumphant^, whether in sunshine or in storm ! "Beyond all comparison, it was the Speech of our Consti- tutional Age. ' Nil simile aiit secundum.'' It was James Madison, of Virginia, himself, who said of it in a letter at the time : ' It crushes nullification, and must hasten au abandonment of secession.' Whatever remained to be done, in the progress of events, for the repression of menacing designs or of overt acts, was grandly done by the resolute patriotism and iron will of President Jackson, whose procla- mation and policy, to that end, Mr. Webster sustained with aU his might. The}" were the legitimate conclusions of his own great Argument. ' ' Of other and later efl^orts of Mr. Webster I have neither time nor inclination to speak. There are too manj' coals still burning beneath the smouldering embers of some of his more recent controversies, for any one to rake them rashl}' open on such an occasion as this. I was by no means in full accord with his memorable 7th of March speech, and my views of it to-day are precisely what he knew they were in 1850. But no differences of opinion on that da^', or on any other day, ever impaired mj admii'ation of his powers, my confidence in his patriotism, my earnest wishes for his promotion, nor the full assurance which I felt that he would administer the Govern- ment with perfect integrit}^, as well as with consummate abihty. "What a President he would have made for a Cen- tennial Year ! What a tower of strength he would have been, to our Constitution and our Country, in all the perplexities and perils through which we have recently passed, and are still passing ! ' Oh ! for an hour of Dundee ! ' " No one will pretend that he was free from all infirmi- ties of character and conduct, though they have often been gi'ossly exaggerated. Great temptations proverbially beset the pathwa}" of great powers ; and one who can overcome almost every thing else may sometimes fail of conquering himself. He never assumed to be faultless ; and he would APPENDIX. 469 have indiguantl}' rebuked any one who assaraed it for him. We all know that, while he could master the great ques- tions of National Finance, and was never weary in main- taining the importance of upholding the National Credit, he never cared quite enough about his own finances, or took particular pains to preserve his own personal credit. We all know that he was sometimes impatient of difTerences, and ftometunes arrogant and overbearing toward opponents. His own consciousness of surpassing powers, and the flatteries — I had almost said, the idolatries — of innumerable friends, would account for much more of all this than he ever dis- pla^'ed. I have known him in all his moods. I have expe- rienced the pain of his frown, as well as the charms of his favor. And I will acknowledge that I had rather confront him as he is here, to-daj' , in bronze, than encounter his oppo- sition in the flesh. His antagonism was tremendous. ' Safest he who stood aloof.' But his better nature always asserted itself in the end. No man or woman or child could be more tender and aflfectionate. ' ' And there is one element of his character which must never be forgotten. I mean his deep religious faith and trust. I recall the delight with which he often conversed on the Bible. I recall the delight with which he dwelt on that exquisite prayer of one of the old Prophets, repeating it fer- vently as a model of eloquence and of devotion : ' Although the fig-tree shall not blossom, neither shall fruit be in the vines ; the labor of the olive shall fail, and the field shall yield no meat ; the flock shall be cut oflT from the fold, and there shall be no herd in the stalls : yet I will rejoice in the Lord, I will joy in the God of my salvation.' I recall his impressive and powerful plea for the Religious Instruction of the Young, in the memorable case of Girard College. I have been with him on the most solemn occasions, in Boston and at Wash- ington, in the midst of the most exciting and painful contro- versies, kneeling by his side at the table of our common Master, and witnessing the humility and reverence of his worship. And who has forgotten those last words which he 470 APPENDIX. ordered to be inscribed, and wMch are inscribed, on hii tombstone at Marshfield : — '"Lord, I believe; help Thou mine unbelief.' Philosophical Argu- ment, especially that drawn from the vastness ot the universe, in com parison with the apparent insignificance of this globe, has sometimes shaken my reason for the faith which is in me ; but my heart has alwaj's assured and re-assured me that the Gospel of Jesus Christ must be a Divine Reality. The Sermon on the Mount cannot be a merely human production. This belief enters into the very depth of my conscience. The whole history of man proves it. — Daniel Webster. "I cannot help wishing that this declaration, in all its original fulness, were engraved on one of the sides of j'onder monumental base, in letters which all the world might read. Amid all the perplexities which modern Science, intentionally or unintentionall}' , is multipl3ang and magnifpng around us, what consolation and strength must ever be found in such an expression of faith from that surpassing intellect ! "I congi-atulate you, my friends, that your Park is to be permanently adorned with this grand figure, and that the inscription on its massive pedestal is to associate it for ever with the great principle of ' Union and Liberty, one and inseparable.' Nor can I conclude without saving, that, from all I have ever known of Mr. Webster's feelings, nothing could have gratified him so much as that, in this Centennial Year, on this memorable Anniversary, nearly a quarter of a century after he had gone to his rest, — when all the partiali- ties and prejudices, all the love and the hate, which wait upon the career of h^ing pubUc men, should have grown cold or passed awa}', — a Statue of himself should be set up here, within the hmits of j-our magnificent City, and amid these superb surroundings. Quite apart from those personal and domestic ties which rendered New York so dear to him, — of which we have a touching reminder in the presence of the venerable lady who was so long the sharer of his name and the ornament of his home, — quite apart from all such con- siderations, he would have appreciated such a tribute as this, I think, above all other posthumous honors. APPENDIX. 471 •* There was something congenial to him in the gi-aucleur of this great Commercial Metropolis. He loved, indeed, the hills and plains of New Hampshire, among which he was born. He dehghted in Marshfield and the shores of Plj-mouth, where he was bui'ied. He was warml}' attached to Boston and the people of Massachusetts, among whom he had Uved so long, and from whom he had so often received his com- missions as their Representative and their Senator in Con- gress. But in your noble City, as he said, he recognized ' the commercial capital, not only of the United States, but of the whole continent from the pole to the South Sea.' ' The growth of this City,' said he, ' and the Constitution of the United States are coevals and contemporaries.' ' New York herself,' he exclaimed, ' is the noblest eulogy on the Union of the States.' He delighted to remember that here Wash- ington was first inaugurated as President, and that hei-e had been the abode of Hamilton and John Jay and Rufus King. And it was at a banquet given to him at your own Niblo's Garden in 1837, and under the inspiration of these associa- tions, that he summed up the whole lesson of the past and the whole duty of the future, and condensed them into a sentiment which has ever since entered into the circulating mediiun of true patriotism, like an ingot of gold with the impress of the eagle : ' One Country, One Constitution, One Destiny.' "Let that motto, still and ever, be the watchword of the hour, and whatever momentary perplexities or perils may environ us, with the blessing of God, no permanent harm can happen to oui" Republic ! " In behalf of my fellow-citizens of New England, I thank Mr. Burnham for this great gift to your Central Park ; and I congratulate him on having associated his name with so splendid a tribute to so illustrious a man. A New Englauder himself, he long ago decorated one of the chief cities of his native State with a noble Statue of a venerated father of the Church to which he belongs. He has now adorned the City 472 appendix:. of his residence with this gi-and figure of a pre-eminent American Statesman. He has thus doubly secured for him- self the grateful remembi-ance of all by whom Rehgion and Patriotism, Churchmanship and Statesmanship, shall be held worth}' of commemoration and honor, in all time to come." On the conclusion of Mr. Winthrop's address, a fine band of music, which had played before the ceremo- nies and between the addresses, struck at once into our National Airs, while the cheers of the assembled multitude for the orators of the occasion ; for the statue and its accomplished artist, Thomas Ball ; and, above all, for its munificent donor, Gordon Webster Burnham, — gave the appropriate close to the proceedings. In the evening, Mr. Burnham gave a brilliant recep- tion in honor of the occasion, at his house, 128 Fifth Avenue. Nearly a thousand invited guests were pres- ent, among the most note-worthy being Governor Tilden, ex-Governors Dix, Morgan, and Hoffman, Mayor Wick- ham, Mayor-elect Ely, William M. Evarts, Robert C. Winthrop, Parke Godwin, Peter Cooper, August Bel- mont, Manton Marble, Fitz-John Porter, S. S. Cox, Rev. William Adams, D. D., Rev. Dr. Morgan, Peter Harvey and several other members of the " Marsh- field Club " of Boston, and many other political, cleri- cal, literary, artistic, and business celebrities of the metropolis. On November 27, 1876, the New York Board of Aldermen unanimously adopted the following preamble and resolutions : — '■^Whereas, Gordon W. Burnham, Esq., having placed in the Central Park, at his own expense, the colossal statue in APPENDIX. 473 bronze of Daniel Webster, -with the granite pedestal on which it stands, did, on the 25th daj- of November, instant, present the same to the Cit}- ; now, therefore, " Resolved^ That the Ma3'or, Aldermen, and Commonalty of the City of New York, appreciating the illustrious charac- ter and services of the statesman to whom this monument is raised, and rejoicing in the possession of a work of art which is so notable itself, and which so eloquently incites to patriotism and to devotion to the Constitution, do now, in grateful recognition of this renewed expression of the munifi- cence and public spirit of an honored fellow-citizen, present their thanks to Gordon W. Burnham for his memorable gift. ^^ Besolved, That the Ma3'or be, and hereb}'^ is, requested to forward to Mr. Burnham an engrossed copy of the fore- going preamble and resolution, duly attested." INDEX. -»<>*- A. Aberdken, the Earl of, 168. Adams, John, dines with Webster, 209 ; anecdote of, 210. Adams, John Quincy, 167. Adams, Samuel, 381, 382. Adams, VTilliain, 406. Appleton, Julia Webster, 329. Appleton, William, nominated for Congress, 193. AsHBURTON, Lord, discusses right of search with Webster, 167. AsHBURTON Treaty, negotiation of, 163. B. Baltimore, Whig Convention at, 194. Bancroft, George, 164. Bakca, Don Calderon de la, 180. Bean, William, freedom purchased, 313-315. Benton, Thomas H., relations with Webster, 222 ; anecdote, 223 ; recon- ciled with John Wilson, 227; rela- tions with Calhoun, 231; at Cal- houn's funeral, 232; character of, 232. Blake, George, anecdotes of, 128- 138, 264. Bramble, Matthew, case of, 67-73. Brougham, Lord, 258, 259. BuRNHAM, Gordon W., presents siatut of Webster to New York (Appen- dix), 449. Burr, Aaron, 75. c. Calhoun, John C, quarrel with Jack- son, 159; relations with Webster, 218 ; last appearance in the Senate, 220-222; funeral, 231. California, Webster's prophecy about, 203. Cass, Lewis, protest against Ashbur- ton Treaty, 163 ; arrival in Boston, 164 ; controversy with Webster, 165 ; at the French court, 256. Choate, Rufus, 64; counsel in San- born case, 87; opinion of Webster as an advocate, 145 ; on refusal of Faneuil Hall, 183, 185, 189; visits Webster at Washington, 195 ; ac- tion in campaign of 1852, 197 ; Web- ster's regard for, 234; estimate oi Webster's ability, 235 ; anecdote, 358. Clay, Henry, nomination for Presi dent, 198 ; contrasted with Webster, 214; Webster's advocacy of, 215; hostility to Webster's nomination, 216; Webster's estimate of, 217. Colby, John, visit of Webster to, 412. 476 INDEX. Crowninshield, Mr., 159. Curtis, Benjamin K., Webster's opin- ion of, 118. D. Dartmouth College case, anecdote relating to, 111 ; papers relating to, 114. Davis, Isaac P., 264. Dextek, Samuel, Webster's opinion of, 81, 82; in the Supreme Court, 208. Dickinson, Daniel S., letter from Webster to, 240. Duval, Gabriel, 209. E. Eliot, Samuel A., Webster's friend- ship for, 242. Elms Farm, Franklin, 294. Evans, George, 237-240. EvARTS, William M., address (Ap- pendix), 453. Everett, Edward, anecdote by, relat- ing to Webster's reply to Hayne, 149 ; opinion of Webster as an ora- tor, 157; at the British court, 168. F. Faneuil Hall refiised to Webster's friends, 182. Fearing, Albert, 170, 173. Fillmore, Millard, Webster's opinion of, 199; Clay's opinion of, 216. Foote, Uenry S., 364. F'ranklin, Elms Farm at, 294. G. Gilmer, Thomas A., death of, 223. Goodyear rubber case, 102-104. Gore, Christopher, visited by Web- ster, 32 ; receives Webster as student, 34; advises Webster to refuse clerk- ship, 37 ; in Congress, 176. H. IIarfer, Robert G., 208. Harrison, William H., appoints Web- ster Secretary of State, 160; anec- dote about inaugural message of, 161 ; Webster's opinion of, 198. Hayne, Robert Y., Webster's reply to, 149 ; anecdotes of Webster and, 152, 153. Hill, Isaac, 244. Hoar, Samuel, counsel in the Sanborn case, 87. Jackson, Andrew, diflSculties of ad- ministration of, 159. Jefferson, Thomas, Webster's visit to, 211 ; Webster's opinion of, 212. Johnson, William, 209. K. Kelp, use of as manure, 273 ; anecdote, 274. Kennison case, 97-101. Ketchum, Hiram, 240. King, Rufus, 176. Kossuth, Louis, 261. L. Lawrence, Abbott, speech in favor of President Taylor, 172. Livermore, Isaac, 170. Livingston, Brockholst, 209. Louis Philippe, King of the French, court and conversations, 255-258. Lyndhurst, Lord, 258. INDEX. 477 M. Madison, James, Webster's visit to, 74. Marshall, Chief Justice John, Web- ster's opinion of, 126; in Washing- ton, 176; in the Supreme Court, 209. Marshfikld, Webster's first visit to, 264 ; history of, 265 ; soil, 271. Mason, Jeremiah, compared with Jere- miah Smith, 56; Webster's friend- ship with, 57-8; Webster's first meeting with, 58 ; anecdotes of Web- ster and, 59-64 ; Webster's estimate of, 64 ; anecdote, 65 ; in the Bramble case, 67 ; eulogy of Webster on, 73. Monica, engaged as servant, 310; anecdote of, 312; grief at Webster's death, 312. MuMMA, John, anecdote of, 350. N. NoRRis, Moses, 244 ; speech at Frank- lin, 250. Northampton Will case, 105-110. NoYES, Parker, 50, 80. P. Parker, Joel, opinion of Webster as a lawyer, 44. Parsons, Theophilus, Webster's de- scription of, 81, 83. Pierce, Franklin, Webster's estimate of, 201-203; visit to Franklin. 244; speech, 251; nominated for Presi- dent, 253; friendship for Webster, 254. PiNKNEY, William, quarrel with Web- ster, 119-123 ; Webster's description of, 120; anecdote of, 124; in the Supreme Court, 208. Plumek, William, Webster's opinion of, 207. Prbston, William C, 230. R. Randolph, John, Webster's contro- versy with, 119. Revere, Paul, 381, 382. Rusk, Thomas J., 241. s. Sanborn, John, case of 85-97. Scott, Winlield, candidate for Presi- dent, 197, 199; Clay's opinion of, 216. Seward, William H., Webster's opin- ion of, 200. Shaw, Lemuel, Webster's opinion of, 127; appointment to the bench, 127. Smith, Jeremiah, compared with Jere- miah Mason, 56 ; Webster's opinion of, 57. Sprague, Peleg, Webster's estimate of, 128. Stark, General John, meeting with Webster, 51. Stevenson, J. T., 193. Stockton, Richard, 208. Stoky Joseph, visit to Webster, 156; in the Supreme Court, 209. Sullivan, John, 377-381. T. Taylor, John, 295; anecdote, 297; letters from Webster to, 298-310. Taylor, Zachary, elected President, 170; Webster's opinion of, 199. Thomas, Captain John, 264,268 ; anec- dote of, 269. Thomas family, of Marshfield, 265. Todd, Tliomas, 209. Tyler, John, Webster's opini.n jf, 207. w. Washington, Bushrod, 209. Wayne, James M., opinion of Web- ster's legal ability, 143. 478 INDEX. Webster, Daniel, birth, 1; home- stead, 1 ; account of family, 9 ; affec- tion for Ezekiel, 10; learns death of Ezekiel, 15; relics of boyhood, 17; attends school, 17; anecdotes of boy- hood, 18-23; college poetr}', 23 ; as a school teacher, 24 ; anecdote, 25 ; law- reading, 27 ; predictions of future eminence, 28 ; studying law, 30 ; ad- mitted to the bar, 30 ; opmion of law studies, 31; visits Boston, 32; interview with Christopher Gore, 32; becomes s student in Mr. Gore's office, 34 ; offered clerkship of Mer- rimack court, 36; seeks Mr. Gore's advice, 37; refuses clerkship, 42; Joel Parker's opinion of him as a lawyer, 44; tirst appearance in Su- perior Court, 45 ; opens an office at Boscawen, 47 ; anecdote, 47 ; de- scription of him at the bar, 48; removal to Portsmouth, 50 ; increase of practice, 51 ; anecdote of meeting with General Stark, 51 ; anecdotes, 54, 55; opinion of New Hampshire judiciary, 56 ; counsel in the Bram- ble case, 67; anecdote, 70; anecdote, 72 ; eulogy on Jeremiah Mason, 73 ; visit to ex-President Madison, 74 ; anecdote, 75; gives legal advice to Aaron Burr, 75; anecdote, 76; esti- mate of his own legal powers, 79 ; qualities as a lawyer, 79 ; opinion of Samuel Dexter, 81, 82; description of Theophilus Parsons, 81, 83 ; legal fees, 84 ; counsel in the Sanborn case, 85-97; counsel in the Kennison case, 97-101; anecdote about the KennisoE case, 101; counsel in the Good\'ear rubber case, 103-104; anecdote about horse " Trenton," 104 ; counsel in the Northampton will case, 105-110; anecdote about Samuel Williston, 110 ; anecdote re- lating to Dartmouth College case, 111; legal briefs and notes, 114; impressions of EngUsh courts, 116; length of American arguments, 117 ; opinion of B. R. Curtis, 118; con troversj' with John Randolph, 119 , opinion of duelling, 119; quarrel with William Pinkney, 119-123; description of Pinkney, 120; anec- dote of Pinkney, 124; friendship for William Wirt, 126; anecdote, 126; opinion of Chief Justice Mar- shall, 126; opinion of Cliief Justice Shaw, 127; anecdote, 127; estimate of Judge Peleg Sprague, 128; rela- tions with George Blake, 128-138; estimate of his own forensic powers, 138-143 ; Ruf us Choate's opinion of him as an advocate, 145 ; respect for the bench, 145 ; public life, 147 ; cho- sen a Representative to Congress, 147 Senator and Secretary of State, 148 nominations to the Presidency, 148 speech in reply to Hayne, 149 ; anec- dote of Mr. Everett, 149 ; remarks on preparing speeches, 151; anecdotes of Hayne, 152, 153; letters on reply to Hayne, 154-156; Everett's opin- ion of him as an orator, 157; anec- dote, 158 ; powers of illustration, 159 ; anecdote apropos to Jackson Cabinet, 159; appointed Secretary of State by President Harrison, 160; anec- dote about inaugural message, 161 ; negotiation of Ashburton Treaty, 163; controversj' with Lewis Cass, 165; despatch denying right of search, 169; dinner with the Massa- chusetts Electoral College, 170 speech in reply to Abbott Lawrence, 174; reflections on the past, 176 conversation about public career. 177; soliciting offices, 178; anecdote 180; reply to French Minister, 181 invitation to Faneuil Hall, 181 ; Fan- euil Hall refused, 182-193; delight at Appleton's nomination, 194; can- didate for Presidential nomination (1852), 194; disappointment, 195; conversation on politics at Marsh- field, 196-203 ; opinion of Harrison, 198; of Clay, 199: of Fillmore, 199; INDEX. 479 of Scott, 199; of Seward, 200; of Pierce, 201 ; prophecy concerning California, 203 ; opinion of political econom}-, 204; caution in speaking of others, 205 ; criticism of public men, 206; respect for President Ty- ler, 207 ; opinion of William Plumer, 207 ; description of leading lawyers, 208; veneration for John Adams, 209; visit to John Adams, 210; visit to Thomas Jefferson, 211 ; opinion of Thomas Jefferson, 212; contrasted with Henry Clay, 214; advocacy of Clay, 215; hostility of Clay, 216; opinion of Clay, 217; relations with Calhoun, 218; anecdote of 7th of March Speech, 219 ; relation with Benton, 222; anecdote of W. and John Wilson, 224; opinion of Silas Wright, 233; regard for Rufus Choate, 234; relations with William C. Preston, 236; opinion of George Evans, 237; friendship for Hiram Ketchum, 240; letter to D. S. Dick- inson, 240; opinion of Thomas J. Rusk, 241 ; friendship for Samuel A. Eliot, 242 ; visit to Franklin, 243 ; dinner party at Franklin, 244-253; conversations with Louis Philippe, 255 ; at the French Court, 255 ; in the British House of Lords, 258 ; estimate of Lord Lyndhurst, 258; estimate of Lord Brougham, 259 ; in the English courts, 260 ; speech about Kossuth, 261; home life, 263; first visit to Marshfield, 264 ; farming tastes, 272 ; introduces kelp and men- haden as manure, 273; attachment to Marshfield, 276; anecdotes about cattle, 276, 277; fondness for ani- mals, 278; boating habits, 279 ; anecdote, 280; favorite horses, 282; anecdote, 282 ; names of guns, 283 ; fondness for shooting and fishing, 283 ; sporting anecdotes, 283-294 ; kindness to birds, 291 ; love for Elms Farm, Franklin, 294 ; interest in farming, 295 ; ill at Frankliu, 296; anecdote, 297; letters to John Taylor, 298-310; engages Monica as servant, 310; aids in purchasing Bean's freedom, 313 ; personal traits, 316; devotion to family, 317 ; physi- cal vigor, 317; description of per- sonal appearance, by Fletcher, 318; affection for first wife, 318-322; letters of Grace Fletcher Webster, 322-328; anecdote of courtship, 328; anecdote, 329 ; grief at daughter'a death, 331; early friendships, 332; dislike of scandal, 335; absence of rancour, 336; courtesy in debate, 337 ; kindness of heart, 338 ; anec- dotes, 338, 339; neighborly kind- ness, 340 ; anecdote, 341 ; anecdote, 344; fondness for familiar scenes, 346; visit to New Hampshire, 34(i': anecdote of personal courage, S50; sense of humor, 355; anecdotes il- lustrating humor, 355-366; habits at table, 360; daily habits, 366; pro- priety in dress, 366 ; love of flowers, 367; fondness for the sea, 368; in- difference to wealth, 368; anecdote, 370; charity, 371; anecdote, 372; anecdote, 374; love of good stories, 876 ; anecdotes, 376-381 ; anecdote of Samuel Adams and Revere, 381, 382; anecdote of Indians, 383-386; in England, 388; anecdotes, 388- 390 ; discourse on the age, 390; re- ligious thoughts and feelings, 393 on importance of the Sabbath, 393 religious character in youth, 394 account of joining the church, 396 appearance in church, 398; taste in sermons, 400; as a practical Chris- tian, 402; anecdote, 402; friendship for Dr. Adams, 408; conversation on religion, 406 ; fondness for Watts's hymns, 409 ; anecdote of visit to John Colby, 410 ; anecdote of his father, 411 ; last days, 422; acci- dent at Kingston, 422; anecdote, 423 ; journey to Boston, 426 ; illncM, 425; last conversAtioos at Marsh- 480 INDEX. field, 428-436 ; incidents of last days, 437-444; death, 444; Dr. Jeffries' account of death, 444; mourning at Marshfield, 447; resting place, 448; statue in Central Park (Appendix), 449. Webster, Ebenezer, birth and char- acter, 2; as a revolutionary soldier, 3; guards Washington's tent, 4; family, 8. Webster, Edward, 286. Webster, Ezekiel, Daniel's affection for, 10; early struggles, 11; teaches school, 12; character, 14; death, 15. Webster, Fletcher, 183, 276, 283, 286, 289, 318, 329, 3S5, 426, 441. "Webster, Grace Fletcher, 318-322; letters of, 322-328 ; courtship, 328. Whig party, career of, 198. WiCKHAM, Mayor, address (Ap- pendix), 453. WiLLisTON, Samuel, anecdote, 110. Wilson, John, anecdote, 224; recon- ciled with Benton, 227. W^iNSLOw family, 266. WiNTHROP, Robert C, address (Ap- pendix), 461. Wirt, William, Webster's friendship for, 128 ; anecdote, 126. Wright, Silas, Webster's opinion of, 233. URENTANO'S